Selected quad for the lemma: kingdom_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
kingdom_n church_n emperor_n king_n 2,169 5 3.7645 3 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A12211 A friendly advertisement to the pretended Catholickes of Ireland declaring, for their satisfaction; that both the Kings supremacie, and the faith whereof his Majestie is the defender, are consonant to the doctrine delivered in the holy Scriptures, and writings of the ancient fathers. And consequently, that the lawes and statutes enacted in that behalfe, are dutifully to be observed by all his Majesties subjects within that kingdome. By Christopher Sibthorp, Knight, one of his Maiesties iustices of his court of chiefe place in Ireland. In the end whereof, is added an epistle written to the author, by the Reverend Father in God, Iames Vssher Bishop of Meath: wherein it is further manifested, that the religion anciently professed in Ireland is, for substance, the same with that, which at this day is by publick authoritie established therein. Sibthorp, Christopher, Sir, d. 1632.; Ussher, James, 1581-1656. 1622 (1622) STC 22522; ESTC S102408 494,750 610

There are 29 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

chief_a or_o supreme_a not_o only_o in_o respect_n of_o duke_n earl_n or_o other_o temporal_a governor_n as_o the_o rhemist_n will_v have_v it_o but_o in_o respect_n of_o all_o the_o rest_n likewise_o be_v they_o bishop_n pastor_n clergy_n man_n or_o whosoever_o for_o he_o write_v that_o his_o epistle_n not_o to_o heathen_n but_o to_o christian_n etc._n and_o among_o they_o not_o to_o the_o lay_v people_n only_o but_o to_o such_o also_o as_o be_v presbyter_n and_o do_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d etc._n do_v the_o office_n of_o bishop_n among_o they_o require_v even_o they_o as_o well_o as_o the_o rest_n to_o yield_v their_o subjection_n and_o submission_n unto_o he_o and_o do_v not_o s._n paul_n also_o require_v the_o same_o subjection_n and_o obedience_n to_o be_v perform_v by_o all_o manner_n of_o person_n to_o their_o king_n and_o prince_n for_o thus_o he_o say_v let_v every_o soul_n be_v subject_a to_o the_o high_a power_n for_o there_o be_v no_o power_n but_o of_o god_n and_o the_o power_n that_o be_v 5._o be_v ordain_v of_o god_n whosoever_o therefore_o resist_v the_o power_n resist_v the_o ordinance_n of_o god_n and_o they_o that_o resist_v shall_v receive_v to_o themselves_o judgement_n or_o condemnation_n and_o again_o he_o say_v wherefore_o you_o must_v be_v subject_a not_o only_o because_o of_o wrath_n but_o also_o for_o conscience_n sake_n now_o then_o if_o every_o one_o must_v be_v subject_a to_o king_n prince_n and_o these_o high_a power_n which_o thus_o bear_v the_o civil_a sword_n as_o both_o these_o apostle_n of_o christ_n do_v here_o clear_o testify_v it_o be_v apparent_a that_o king_n and_o prince_n and_o these_o high_a power_n be_v and_o must_v needs_o be_v grant_v to_o be_v supreme_a to_o who_o all_o the_o rest_n within_o their_o dominion_n be_v thus_o require_v to_o be_v subject_a yea_o s._n paul_n write_v that_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o require_v every_o soul_n therein_o to_o be_v subject_a to_o these_o high_a power_n 7._o sheweth_z that_o not_o only_o lay_v people_n but_o all_o within_o the_o ecclesiastical_a order_n also_o even_o as_o many_o as_o have_v soul_n 13.1_o shall_v be_v subject_a to_o these_o high_a power_n and_o therefore_o s._n chrysostome_n upon_o this_o place_n say_v direct_o sive_fw-la apostolus_fw-la 23._o sive_fw-la evangelista_n sive_fw-la propheta_fw-la sive_fw-la quisquis_fw-la tandem_fw-la fueris_fw-la etc._n etc._n every_o soul_n must_v be_v subject_a to_o the_o high_a power_n yea_o though_o you_o be_v a_o apostle_n or_o a_o evangelist_n or_o a_o prophet_n or_o whosoever_o you_o be_v and_o he_o further_o add_v say_v neque_fw-la enim_fw-la pietatem_fw-la subvertit_fw-la ista_fw-la subiectio_fw-la for_o neither_o do_v this_o subjection_n overthrow_v piety_n or_o godliness_n and_o so_o say_v theodoret_n likewise_o upon_o this_o text_n 13._o sive_fw-la est_fw-la sacerdo●_n aliquis_fw-la sive_fw-la antistes_fw-la sive_fw-la monasticam_fw-la vitam_fw-la professus_fw-la we_o cedat_fw-la quibus_fw-la sunt_fw-la mandati_fw-la magistratus_fw-la whether_o he_o be_v a_o priest_n or_o a_o prelate_n or_o profess_v a_o monastical_a life_n he_o must_v submit_v himself_o to_o those_o to_o who_o magistracy_n be_v commit_v theophilact_n upon_o the_o same_o text_n 13._o speak_v in_o like_a sort_n vniversos_fw-la erudit_fw-la sive_fw-la sacerdos_n sit_fw-la ille_fw-la sive_fw-la monachus_n sive_fw-la apostolus_fw-la ut_fw-la se_fw-la principibus_fw-la subdant_fw-la cuiusmodi_fw-la subiectio_fw-la nil_fw-la prorsus_fw-la est_fw-la dei_fw-la sublatura_fw-la cognitionem_fw-la s._n paul_n instruct_v all_o say_v he_o whether_o he_o be_v a_o priest_n or_o a_o monk_n or_o a_o apostle_n that_o they_o shall_v subject_v themselves_o to_o prince_n which_o kind_n of_o subjection_n will_v in_o no_o sort_n take_v away_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n likewise_o speak_v oecumenius_n instruens_fw-la omnem_fw-la animam_fw-la &_o audience_n ut_fw-la licet_fw-la sacerdos_n quispiam_fw-la sit_fw-la licet_fw-la monachus_n licet_fw-la apostolus_fw-la potestatibus_fw-la subijciatur_fw-la 13._o that_o s._n paul_n teach_v and_o instruct_v every_o soul_n that_o though_o he_o be_v a_o priest_n though_o a_o monk_n though_o a_o apostle_n he_o must_v be_v subject_a to_o these_o high_a power_n bernard_n also_o write_v to_o the_o archbishop_n of_o senona_n allege_v this_o text_n let_v every_o soul_n be_v subject_a to_o the_o high_a power_n and_o add_v further_a 42._o si_fw-mi omnis_fw-la anima_fw-la &_o vestra_fw-la quicksand_n vos_fw-la excepit_fw-la ab_fw-la universitate_fw-la if_o every_o soul_n must_v be_v subject_a then_o must_v your_o soul_n also_o for_o who_o have_v except_v you_o from_o this_o universality_n yea_o aeneas_n silvius_n who_o be_v himself_o afterward_o a_o pope_n of_o rome_n call_v pope_n pius_n the_o second_o allege_v this_o text_n say_v council_n omnis_fw-la anima_fw-la potestatibus_fw-la sublimioribus_fw-la subdita_fw-la sit_fw-la nec_fw-la excipit_fw-la animam_fw-la papae_fw-la let_v every_o soul_n be_v subject_a to_o the_o high_a power_n neither_o say_v he_o do_v he_o except_v herein_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o pope_n himself_o and_o gregory_n who_o be_v also_o himself_o a_o pope_n of_o rome_n in_o a_o epistle_n to_o the_o emperor_n mauritius_n in_o the_o person_n of_o christ_n 100.103_o say_v thus_o unto_o he_o sacerdotes_fw-la meos_fw-la manui_fw-la tuus_fw-la commisi_fw-la i_o have_v commit_v my_o priest_n to_o thy_o hand_n and_o in_o another_o epistle_n he_o say_v that_o dominari_fw-la non_fw-la solum_fw-la militibus_fw-la sed_fw-la etiam_fw-la sacerdotibus_fw-la concessit_fw-la god_n have_v make_v the_o emperor_n ruler_n not_o only_o over_o soldier_n but_o over_o priest_n also_o he_o further_o call_v the_o emperor_n his_o lord_n &_o say_v that_o potestas_fw-la super_fw-la omnes_fw-la homines_fw-la dominorum_fw-la meorum_fw-la pietati_fw-la coelitus_fw-la data_fw-la est_fw-la power_n over_o all_o man_n be_v give_v from_o heaven_n to_o the_o piety_n of_o my_o lord_n and_o this_o supremacy_n do_v also_o optatus_n express_o acknowledge_v say_v super_fw-la imperatorem_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la nisi_fw-la solus_fw-la deus_fw-la qui_fw-la fecit_fw-la imperatorem_fw-la 3._o above_o the_o emperor_n be_v not_o any_o but_o god_n only_o that_o make_v the_o emperor_n and_o this_o again_o do_v all_o the_o ancient_a christian_a church_n acknowledge_v in_o tertullians_n time_n say_v thus_o scapul_n colimus_fw-la imperatorem_fw-la ut_fw-la hominem_fw-la à_fw-la deo_fw-la secundum_fw-la &_o solo_fw-la deo_fw-la minorem_fw-la we_o christian_n honour_v our_o emperor_n as_o the_o man_n next_o unto_o god_n and_o inferior_a only_o to_o god_n again_o he_o say_v that_o they_o hold_v their_o emperor_n to_o be_v under_o the_o power_n of_o god_n only_o à_fw-la quo_fw-la sunt_fw-la secundi_fw-la post_fw-la quem_fw-la primi_fw-la from_o who_o they_o be_v the_o second_o 30._o and_o after_o who_o they_o be_v the_o first_o king_n therefore_o who_o have_v the_o like_a preeminence_n &_o authority_n within_o their_o kingdom_n that_o the_o emperor_n have_v within_o their_o empire_n must_v of_o all_o that_o will_v be_v right_a and_o orthodox_n christian_n be_v acknowledge_v to_o have_v the_o supremacy_n or_o which_o be_v all_o one_o the_o supreme_a government_n over_o all_o person_n within_o their_o own_o kingdom_n and_o dominion_n of_o what_o sort_n soever_o whether_o they_o be_v lay_v or_o ecclesiastical_a and_o this_o be_v further_a confirm_v by_o the_o six_o toletan_n council_n which_o speak_v of_o chintillanus_fw-la the_o king_n say_v thus_o 14._o nefas_fw-la est_fw-la in_o dubium_fw-la deducere_fw-la eius_fw-la potestatem_fw-la cui_fw-la omnium_fw-la gubernatio_fw-la superno_fw-la constat_fw-la delegata_fw-la judicio_fw-la it_o be_v a_o heinous_a offence_n to_o call_v his_o power_n into_o doubt_n to_o who_o it_o be_v apparent_a that_o the_o government_n of_o all_o be_v commit_v by_o god_n appointment_n how_o intolerable_o injurious_a then_o be_v the_o popish_a clergy_n which_o will_v not_o acknowledge_v this_o subjection_n but_o if_o it_o so_o fall_v out_o that_o any_o of_o they_o be_v robber_n traitor_n rebel_n murderer_n or_o how_o great_a offender_n soever_o in_o a_o commonweal_n yet_o hold_v themselves_o nevertheless_o free_a by_o reason_n of_o their_o order_n from_o trial_n for_o those_o offence_n in_o king_n court_n this_o you_o see_v be_v direct_o repugnant_a to_o the_o institution_n and_o word_n of_o god_n and_o to_o the_o opinion_n and_o practice_n of_o the_o primitive_a and_o ancient_a church_n and_o be_v moreover_o long_o since_o condemn_v as_o it_o be_v well_o worthy_a by_o marsilius_n of_o milan_n as_o a_o new_a devise_n and_o not_o so_o new_a as_o pestiferous_a 23._o occasion_v the_o ruin_n of_o state_n and_o induce_v a_o plurality_n of_o sovereignty_n in_o one_o kingdom_n yea_o from_o hence_o all_o scandal_n grow_v and_o which_o stand_v say_v he_o civil_a discord_n shall_v never_o have_v a_o end_n be_v not_o then_o the_o position_n of_o such_o priest_n and_o jesuit_n as_o emanuel_n sa_n be_v just_o to_o be_v condemn_v aphor._n who_o in_o his_o aphorism_n at_o the_o word_n clericus_fw-la affirm_v that_o clerici_fw-la rebellio_fw-la in_o
and_o to_o declare_v the_o supremacy_n of_o the_o emperor_n than_o this_o that_o the_o emperor_n in_o ancient_a time_n exile_v banish_a imprison_a and_o otherwise_o also_o by_o his_o authority_n 13.4_o punish_v even_o some_o of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n themselves_o as_o well_o as_o other_o bishop_n and_o when_o the_o emperor_n say_v moreover_o thus_o that_o if_o any_o do_v grow_v tumultuous_a or_o unruly_a illius_fw-la statim_fw-la audacia_fw-la ministri_fw-la dei_fw-la hoc_fw-la est_fw-la mea_fw-la executione_fw-la coercebitur_fw-la his_o boldness_n shall_v forthwith_o be_v repress_v by_o the_o sword_n or_o execution_n of_o god_n minister_n that_o be_v of_o myself_o for_o as_o s._n paul_n say_v the_o emperor_n king_n or_o prince_n or_o any_o of_o those_o high_a power_n that_o bear_v the_o civil_a sword_n be_v god_n minister_n and_o a_o revenger_n unto_o wrath_n to_o he_o that_o do_v evil_a whosoever_o he_o be_v yea_o such_o be_v the_o demeanour_n and_o loyalty_n which_o even_o gregory_n the_o great_a bishop_n of_o rome_n perform_v to_o the_o emperor_n that_o when_o the_o emperor_n have_v command_v a_o law_n to_o be_v publish_v which_o gregory_n himself_o mislike_v yet_o nevertheless_o he_o obey_v the_o emperor_n commandment_n 100l_n as_o a_o good_a subject_n unto_o he_o ego_fw-la quidem_fw-la iussioni_fw-la tuus_fw-la subiectus_fw-la eandem_fw-la legem_fw-la per_fw-la diversas_fw-la terrarum_fw-la part_n transmitti_fw-la feci_fw-la command_n i_o be_v subject_n to_o your_o command_n say_v he_o have_v cause_v the_o same_o law_n to_o be_v transmit_v through_o diverse_a part_n of_o the_o earth_n by_o which_o one_o example_n of_o gregory_n if_o there_o be_v no_o more_o speak_v you_o may_v perceive_v that_o for_o the_o space_n of_o many_o hundred_o year_n after_o christ_n even_o unto_o his_o time_n and_o in_o his_o time_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n themselves_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o emperor_n and_o at_o their_o command_n which_o do_v yet_o further_o appear_v by_o this_o tha●_n even_o king_n of_o rome_n do_v also_o sometime_o send_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n as_o their_o ambassador_n as_o for_o example_n diaconus_fw-la king_n theodorick_n send_v john_n bishop_n of_o rome_n ambassador_n to_o the_o emperor_n justinian_n and_o king_n theodatus_fw-la about_o the_o year_n 537_o send_v pope_n agapetus_n as_o his_o ambassador_n likewise_o to_o the_o emperor_n about_o a_o treaty_n of_o peace_n but_o yet_o together_o with_o the_o supremacy_n of_o emperor_n let_v i_o show_v unto_o you_o more_o full_o their_o authority_n in_o ecclesiastical_a thing_n or_o cause_n for_o of_o their_o authority_n in_o civil_a or_o temporal_a cause_n there_o be_v no_o question_n make_v 8_o when_o the_o donatist_n therefore_o allege_a that_o emperor_n be_v to_o meddle_v only_o with_o civil_a cause_n and_o not_o with_o ecclesiastical_a or_o concern_v god_n religion_n optatus_n optatus_n hold_v this_o to_o be_v a_o point_n of_o madness_n in_o donatus_n and_o those_o his_o follower_n ille_fw-la solito_fw-la furore_fw-la accensus_fw-la in_fw-la haec_fw-la verba_fw-la prorupit_fw-la quid_fw-la imperatori_fw-la cum_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la donatus_n inflame_v with_o his_o accustom_a fury_n or_o madness_n say_v he_o break_v forth_o into_o these_o word_n what_o have_v the_o emperor_n to_o do_v with_o the_o church_n where_o you_o see_v he_o call_v it_o express_o a_o madness_n to_o hold_v that_o opinion_n and_o this_o s._n augustine_n likewise_o censure_v and_o condemn_v account_v it_o a_o absurd_a thing_n for_o any_o to_o say_v thus_o unto_o king_n take_v you_o no_o care_n in_o your_o kingdom_n who_o oppugn_v the_o church_n and_o who_o defend_v it_o who_o be_v religious_a 50._o and_o who_o sacrilegious_a etc._n etc._n for_o if_o the_o king_n be_v to_o regard_n and_o punish_v by_o civil_a punishment_n the_o offence_n do_v against_o the_o second_o table_n as_o disobedience_n to_o parent_n murder_n theft_n trespass_n wrong_n and_o injury_n do_v by_o one_o man_n against_o another_o be_v he_o not_o much_o more_o to_o regard_v and_o punish_v by_o civil_a punishment_n the_o great_a offence_n namely_o those_o that_o be_v do_v immediate_o against_o god_n be_v breach_n of_o the_o first_o table_n as_o atheism_n idolatry_n false_a worship_n wrong_a religion_n heresy_n schism_n blasphemy_n breach_n of_o the_o sabbath_n and_o such_o like_a for_o be_v there_o any_o comparison_n or_o proportion_n between_o man_n and_o god_n but_o to_o declare_v this_o matter_n yet_o further_o by_o some_o particular_n ecclesiastical_a the_o christian_a emperor_n in_o ancient_a time_n make_v law_n for_o god_n and_o his_o religion_n and_o cause_v they_o to_o be_v execute_v and_o so_o deal_v in_o matter_n ecclesiastical_a as_o well_o as_o civil_a as_o beside_o that_o which_o be_v before_o speak_v be_v further_a evident_a even_o by_o the_o title_n of_o the_o civil_a law_n itself_o viz._n de_fw-fr summa_fw-la trinitate_fw-la &_o fide_fw-la catholica_fw-la de_fw-fr sacrosanctis_fw-la ecclesijs_fw-la command_n de_fw-fr episcopis_fw-la &_o clericis_fw-la de_fw-fr haereticis_fw-la etc._n etc._n they_o likewise_o make_v commissioner_n in_o ecclesiastical_a cause_n for_o when_o caecilianus_n bishop_n of_o carthage_n be_v accuse_v by_o donatus_n and_o some_o other_o of_o that_o faction_n constantine_n the_o emperor_n command_v caecilianus_n to_o come_v to_o rome_n with_o a_o certain_a number_n of_o bishop_n that_o accuse_v he_o and_o by_o his_o commission_n extant_a in_o eusebius_n authorize_v and_o appoint_v miltiades_n the_o then_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o some_o other_o with_o he_o for_o the_o hear_n and_o end_v of_o that_o matter_n these_o commissioner_n condemn_v donatus_n who_o appeal_v from_o their_o sentence_n to_o the_o emperor_n himself_o which_o appeal_v also_o the_o emperor_n at_o last_o receive_v where_o beside_o that_o you_o see_v that_o this_o christian_a emperor_n make_v commissioner_n in_o this_o episcopal_a and_o ecclesiastical_a cause_n observe_v withal_o that_o miltiades_n the_o then_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v one_o of_o those_o commissioner_n and_o therewithal_o you_o may_v note_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v then_o very_o clear_o subject_a and_o not_o superior_a to_o the_o emperor_n so_o that_o a_o christian_a king_n or_o prince_n not_o only_o may_v make_v commissioner_n in_o ecclesiastical_a cause_n but_o may_v also_o have_v appeal_v make_v unto_o he_o as_o be_v here_o apparent_a yea_o even_o s._n paul_n himself_o appeal_v 12._o not_o unto_o peter_n which_o no_o doubt_n he_o will_v have_v do_v if_o peter_n have_v then_o have_v the_o supremacy_n but_o unto_o caesar._n the_o council_n also_o of_o africa_n will_v allow_v of_o no_o appeal_v to_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n or_o beyond_o the_o sea_n but_o make_v a_o decree_n direct_o against_o it_o appoint_v presbyter_n deacon_n or_o other_o inferior_a clerk_n if_o they_o be_v grieve_v with_o the_o sentence_n of_o their_o own_o bishop_n to_o resort_v to_o the_o next_o bishop_n quod_fw-la si_fw-la &_o ab●ijs_fw-la provocandum_fw-la putaverint_fw-la 92._o non_fw-la provocent_fw-la nisi_fw-la ad_fw-la affricana_fw-la concilia_fw-la vel_fw-la ad_fw-la primate_fw-la provinciarum_fw-la suarum_fw-la ad_fw-la transmarina_fw-la autem_fw-la qui_fw-la putaverit_fw-la appellandum_fw-la à_fw-la nullo_n intra_fw-la affricam_fw-la in_o communionem_fw-la suscipiatur_fw-la rome_n and_o if_o they_o shall_v think_v fit_a to_o appeal_v from_o they_o let_v they_o not_o appeal_v but_o to_o counsel_n within_o africa_n or_o to_o the_o primate_fw-la of_o their_o own_o province_n but_o he_o that_o shall_v think_v it_o fit_a to_o appeal_v beyond_o the_o sea_n let_v he_o be_v admit_v to_o the_o communion_n by_o none_o within_o africa_n this_o canon_n which_o be_v thus_o establish_v in_o the_o african_a council_n purposely_o for_o the_o defeat_n and_o disannul_v of_o the_o ambitious_a course_n and_o claim_v of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v again_o repeat_v and_o confirm_v in_o the_o milevitane_a council_n angliae_fw-la in_o the_o time_n likewise_o of_o king_n william_n rufus_n anselmus_n the_o archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n will_v have_v appeal_v to_o rome_n but_o not_o only_o the_o king_n but_o the_o bishop_n of_o england_n also_o be_v therein_o against_o he_o and_o afterward_o in_o the_o day_n of_o henry_n the_o second_o king_n of_o england_n this_o law_n be_v make_v 2._o si_fw-la quis_fw-la inventus_fw-la fuerit_fw-la etc._n etc._n if_o any_o shall_v be_v find_v bring_v letter_n or_o a_o mandate_n from_o the_o pope_n etc._n etc._n let_v he_o be_v apprehend_v prooemio_fw-la and_o let_v justice_n be_v do_v upon_o he_o without_o delay_n as_o upon_o a_o traitor_n to_o the_o law_n and_o kingdom_n again_o it_o be_v there_o say_v generaliter_fw-la interdictum_fw-la est_fw-la ne_fw-la quis_fw-la appellet_fw-la ad_fw-la dominum_fw-la papam_fw-la that_o it_o be_v general_o give_v in_o charge_n that_o none_o shall_v appeal_v to_o the_o pope_n moreover_o the_o christian_a emperor_n in_o ancient_a time_n have_v the_o authority_n of_o summon_v and_o call_v counsel_n as_o for_o example_n the_o first_o general_a council_n of_o nice_a be_v assemble_v by_o constantine_n
to_o show_v how_o the_o other_o word_n in_o the_o text_n be_v also_o verify_v in_o the_o pope_n while_o he_o take_v upon_o he_o to_o forgive_v sin_n as_o full_o &_o absolute_o as_o god_n himself_o while_o he_o take_v upon_o he_o to_o depose_v king_n and_o to_o dispose_v of_o their_o kingdom_n at_o his_o pleasure_n while_o he_o take_v upon_o he_o not_o only_o to_o order_n and_o dispose_v of_o earthly_a kingdom_n but_o also_o to_o rule_v and_o order_v the_o whole_a church_n of_o god_n upon_o earth_n at_o his_o own_o will_n what_o do_v he_o else_o but_o sit_v in_o the_o temple_n of_o god_n as_o god_n and_o so_o show_v himself_o as_o if_o be_v be_v god_n 2.4_o yea_o while_o he_o advance_v himself_o above_o all_o bishop_n king_n prince_n and_o emperor_n of_o the_o world_n and_o above_o all_o general_a counsel_n also_o so_o that_o he_o will_v not_o be_v censure_v or_o control_v by_o any_o of_o these_o or_o by_o any_o of_o their_o law_n or_o constitution_n and_o which_o be_v yet_o more_o while_o he_o advance_v himself_o even_o above_o the_o divine_a scripture_n than_o self_n dispense_n with_o they_o at_o his_o pleasure_n what_o do_v he_o else_o but_o so_o carry_v himself_o as_o if_o he_o be_v god_n or_o rather_o above_o god_n but_o again_o what_o do_v he_o else_o but_o sit_v in_o the_o temple_n of_o god_n as_o god_n and_o so_o show_v himself_o as_o if_o he_o be_v god_n while_o he_o rule_v and_o reign_v in_o man_n conscience_n like_o god_n yea_o or_o rather_o above_o god_n himself_o for_o common_a experience_n show_v that_o the_o man_n and_o woman_n that_o be_v under_o his_o subjection_n and_o of_o his_o church_n and_o superstition_n be_v more_o devote_a and_o more_o regardful_a to_o know_v and_o obey_v his_o will_n and_o his_o ordinance_n and_o constitution_n than_o they_o be_v to_o know_v and_o obey_v god_n &_o his_o word_n and_o commandment_n it_o be_v then_o very_a evident_a that_o the_o pope_n be_v at_o the_o least_o as_o a_o god_n unto_o they_o and_o that_o upon_o he_o they_o as_o confident_o rely_v as_o upon_o god_n himself_o affirm_v and_o suppose_v he_o to_o have_v a_o infallibility_n of_o judgement_n and_o such_o a_o special_a direction_n by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o that_o he_o can_v possible_o err_v in_o any_o thing_n he_o teach_v decree_v or_o determine_v yea_o do_v he_o not_o sit_v in_o the_o temple_n of_o god_n as_o god_n &_o so_o show_v himself_o as_o if_o he_o be_v god_n when_o he_o not_o only_o take_v upon_o he_o evidenser_fw-fr the_o proper_a and_o peculiar_a power_n honour_n preeminence_n right_n and_o authority_n belong_v unto_o god_n as_o be_v before_o declare_v but_o even_o the_o very_a title_n and_o name_n also_o of_o god_n for_o with_o a_o very_a bold_a face_n he_o acknowledge_v himself_o to_o be_v call_v god_n urge_v the_o title_n and_o challenge_v it_o and_o further_o 1555._o they_o say_v of_o he_o that_o he_o be_v dominus_fw-la deus_fw-la noster_fw-la papa_n our_o lord_n god_n the_o pope_n and_o do_v not_o also_o these_o verse_n dedicate_v to_o he_o and_o accept_v of_o he_o sufficient_o declare_v the_o same_o oraclo_fw-la vocis_fw-la mundi_fw-la moderaris_fw-la habenas_fw-la et_fw-la meritò_fw-la in_o terris_fw-la crederis_fw-la esse_fw-la deus_fw-la that_o be_v by_o oracle_n of_o thy_o voice_n thou_o rule_v and_o govern_v all_o and_o worthy_o a_o god_n on_o earth_n man_n deem_v and_o do_v thou_o call_v 6_o but_o s._n paul_n proceed_v and_o say_v thus_o remember_v you_o not_o that_o when_o i_o be_v yet_o with_o you_o i_o tell_v you_o these_o thing_n and_o now_o you_o know_v what_o withhold_v 8._o that_o he_o may_v be_v reveal_v in_o his_o time_n for_o the_o mystery_n of_o iniquity_n already_o work_v only_o be_v which_o now_o withhold_v shall_v let_v until_o he_o be_v take_v out_o of_o the_o way_n and_o then_o shall_v that_o wicked_a or_o lawless_a ●an_v be_v reveal_v 〈◊〉_d here_o he_o show_v what_o it_o be_v that_o do_v withhold_v and_o keep_v back_o antichrist_n that_o he_o do_v not_o appear_v in_o his_o colour_n in_o those_o time_n of_o the_o apostle_n albeit_o the_o mystery_n of_o that_o iniquity_n be_v not_o then_o altogether_o idle_a but_o be_v even_o then_o a_o work_n in_o such_o close_a manner_n as_o it_o can_v this_o same_o 2._o to_o chatechon_n which_o withhold_v and_o let_v and_o hinder_v antichrist_n that_o he_o can_v not_o then_o appear_v be_v the_o roman_a empire_n as_o tertullian_n chrysostome_n augustine_n hierome_n and_o other_o do_v expound_v it_o for_o so_o long_o as_o the_o roman_a empire_n stand_v in_o his_o full_a and_o flourish_a estate_n antichrist_n can_v not_o rise_v to_o that_o his_o power_n and_o height_n and_o therefore_o that_o antichrist_n may_v appear_v and_o show_v himself_o in_o his_o glory_n and_o greatness_n it_o be_v requisite_a that_o the_o emperor_n of_o rome_n shall_v give_v place_n and_o depart_v from_o that_o city_n where_o the_o seat_n of_o the_o empire_n than_o be_v that_o so_o the_o pope_n may_v possess_v it_o and_o make_v it_o his_o seat_n according_a to_o that_o pprophecy_n in_o the_o revelation_n of_o s._n john_n before_o mention_v where_o it_o be_v foretell_v that_o 17.18_o that_o great_a city_n of_o rome_n be_v to_o become_v the_o head_n and_o metropolitan_a city_n for_o the_o antichristian_a kingdom_n and_o the_o issue_n and_o event_n have_v show_v itself_o answerable_a for_o the_o emperor_n constantine_n remove_v and_o translate_v the_o seat_n of_o the_o empire_n from_o rome_n in_o italy_n unto_o byzantium_n otherwise_o call_v constantinople_n in_o greece_n and_o after_o that_o begin_v the_o emperor_n by_o little_a and_o little_a to_o loose_v their_o right_n in_o italy_n so_o that_o at_o the_o last_o rome_n the_o ancient_a seat_n of_o the_o empire_n with_o a_o great_a part_n of_o italy_n fall_v into_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n his_o hand_n and_o now_o and_o for_o the_o space_n of_o many_o hundred_o year_n have_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n otherwise_o call_v the_o pope_n &_o not_o the_o emperor_n there_o have_v his_o seat_n this_o be_v so_o evident_a as_o that_o it_o need_v no_o further_a declaration_n wherefore_o to_o go_v forward_o s._n paul_n say_v that_o the_o come_n of_o antichrist_n shall_v be_v by_o the_o work_v of_o satan_n with_o all_o power_n and_o sign_n and_o lie_v wonder_v and_o in_o all_o deceivablenesse_n of_o unrighteousness_n 2.9.10_o among_o they_o that_o perish_v because_o they_o receive_v not_o the_o love_n of_o the_o truth_n etc._n etc._n this_o be_v before_o show_v to_o agree_v very_o fit_o to_o the_o kingdom_n of_o popery_n for_o who_o boast_n so_o much_o of_o miracle_n as_o they_o and_o yet_o even_o touch_v the_o miracle_n in_o their_o legend_n claudius_n espencaeus_fw-la himself_o say_v 1._o no_o stable_a be_v so_o full_a of_o dung_n as_o their_o legend_n be_v full_a of_o fable_n canus_n also_o tax_v even_o gregory_n dialogue_n and_o bedaes_n history_n in_o this_o point_n and_o caietan_n further_a tax_v as_o uncertain_a the_o miracle_n do_v even_o by_o those_o that_o be_v the_o canonize_v saint_n in_o popery_n why_o then_o will_v they_o still_o be_v so_o credulous_a as_o to_o believe_v their_o miracle_n to_o object_v they_o or_o to_o rely_v upon_o they_o for_o if_o you_o doubt_v of_o the_o real_a bodily_a presence_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o sacrament_n they_o will_v tell_v you_o that_o it_o have_v be_v confirm_v by_o miracle_n if_o you_o doubt_v of_o purgatory_n and_o whether_o mass_n trental_n prayer_n or_o such_o like_a do_v the_o soul_n of_o the_o dead_a any_o good_a they_o will_v also_o tell_v you_o of_o a_o miracle_n or_o of_o some_o strange_a vision_n revelation_n or_o apparition_n of_o some_o dead_a person_n to_o prove_v the_o same_o and_o so_o to_o comprehend_v all_o in_o few_o word_n for_o the_o confirmation_n of_o their_o whole_a religion_n they_o will_v tell_v you_o strange_a tale_n of_o miracle_n apparition_n and_o wonder_n wrought_v by_o their_o pope_n priest_n jesuit_n monk_n and_o other_o their_o suppose_a holy_a man_n and_o holy_a woman_n of_o their_o religion_n howbeit_o god_n himself_o have_v herein_o give_v we_o a_o good_a rule_n 5._o and_o direction_n say_v thus_o if_o there_o arise_v among_o you_o a_o prophet_n or_o a_o dreamer_n of_o dream_n and_o give_v thou_o a_o sign_n or_o wonder_n and_o the_o sign_n and_o the_o wonder_n which_o he_o have_v tell_v thou_o come_v to_o pass_v saying_n let_v we_o go_v after_o other_o god_n which_o thou_o have_v not_o know_v and_o let_v we_o serve_v they_o thou_o shall_v not_o hearken_v to_o the_o word_n of_o that_o prophet_n or_o unto_o that_o dreamer_n of_o dream_n for_o the_o lord_n your_o god_n prove_v you_o to_o know_v whether_o you_o love_v the_o lord_n your_o god_n with_o all_o your_o heart_n and_o with_o all_o your_o soul_n you_o
christ_n sleep_v a_o long_a time_n for_o from_o the_o year_n 870_o to_o the_o year_n 1050_o who_o do_v you_o see_v but_o necromancer_n but_o adulterer_n and_o murderer_n and_o infamous_a person_n prefer_v to_o the_o papacy_n platius_fw-la in_o the_o life_n of_o benedict_n the_o four_o speak_v the_o like_a and_o give_v the_o reason_n of_o all_o this_o say_v thus_o this_o liberty_n of_o sin_v say_v he_o have_v beget_v we_o these_o monster_n and_o prodigy_n who_o by_o ambition_n and_o corruption_n have_v rather_o usurp_v then_o possess_v the_o holy_a chair_n of_o peter_n there_o be_v no_o prince_n to_o repress_v the_o wickedness_n of_o these_o man_n yea_o platina_n though_o the_o pope_n servant_n and_o secretary_n yet_o well_o know_v their_o vice_n and_o the_o vice_n of_o the_o people_n under_o his_o government_n do_v in_o a_o manner_n speak_v as_o if_o himself_o despair_v of_o their_o salvation_n for_o thus_o be_v his_o word_n our_o vice_n say_v he_o be_v grow_v to_o tha●_n height_n that_o they_o will_v hardly_o ever_o find_v mercy_n in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n but_o observe_v yet_o further_o how_o horrible_a and_o wicked_a their_o reproaching_n slander_n and_o defame_n heretofore_o have_v be_v and_o yet_o still_o be_v of_o god_n church_n &_o people_n &_o their_o religion_n call_v they_o usual_o heretic_n schismatickes_n and_o by_o such_o other_o odious_a name_n &_o lay_v sometime_o most_o notorious_a slander_n and_o most_o impious_a false_a accusation_n to_o their_o charge_n &_o persuade_v as_o if_o our_o religion_n be_v a_o religion_n allow_v licentiousness_n a_o condemner_n and_o disallower_n of_o all_o good_a work_n and_o as_o though_o we_o approve_a of_o all_o dissoluteness_n and_o be_v enemy_n to_o the_o virgin_n marie_n &_o to_o all_o saint_n &_o as_o though_o we_o make_v god_n the_o author_n of_o sin_n and_o evil_a &_o other_o such_o like_a thing_n which_o we_o utter_o detest_v dislike_n and_o abhor_v and_o which_o he_o clean_a contrary_n to_o our_o opinion_n and_o to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o our_o religion_n yea_o they_o not_o only_o thus_o dishonour_n &_o wrong_v the_o true_a church_n and_o people_n of_o god_n upon_o earth_n but_o even_o the_o church_n triumphant_a and_o saint_n also_o in_o heaven_n for_o be_v it_o not_o a_o great_a wrong_n and_o dishonour_n to_o the_o glorify_a saint_n in_o heaven_n to_o turn_v they_o into_o idol_n or_o to_o make_v they_o instrument_n of_o idolatry_n or_o of_o dishonour_v god_n by_o invocate_a &_o pray_v unto_o they_o when_o as_o prayer_n and_o invocation_n be_v a_o service_n worship_n and_o honour_n proper_o and_o only_o belong_v to_o god_n again_o do_v they_o not_o much_o dishonour_n the_o saint_n when_o they_o employ_v they_o about_o base_a office_n commend_v the_o keep_n of_o their_o hog_n to_o one_o of_o their_o horse_n to_o another_o the_o cure_n of_o the_o scurf_n to_o a_o three_o etc._n etc._n yea_o even_o concern_v that_o most_o chaste_a bless_a &_o glorious_a virgin_n mary_n do_v they_o not_o extreme_o dishonour_v she_o when_o they_o make_v she_o to_o favour_v immodesty_n &_o uncleanness_n for_o there_o be_v a_o italian_a book_n entitle_v miracoli_fw-la d●ella_fw-la glorios●_n virgin_n maria_n print_v at_o milan_n in_o the_o year_n 1547_o which_o say_v that_o a_o certain_a abbess_n be_v with_o child_n the_o holy_a virgin_n be_v willing_a to_o cover_v her_o crime_n do_v in_o her_o stead_n present_v herself_o before_o the_o bishop_n in_o form_n of_o the_o abbess_n and_o show_v he_o by_o a_o ocular_a demonstration_n that_o she_o be_v not_o with_o child_n caesarius_n also_o in_o his_o seven_o book_n chapt._n 35_o report_n that_o the_o virgin_n marie_n for_o twelve_o whole_a year_n do_v supply_v the_o place_n of_o a_o certain_a nun●●_n call_v beatrice_n whilst_o she_o lie_v in_o the_o s●ewes_n till_o at_o last_o she_o come_v back_o again_o to_o take_v her_o place_n and_o free_v the_o virgin_n from_o be_v in_o her_o room_n any_o long_o but_o consider_v yet_o further_o the_o most_o terrible_a cruel_a barbarous_a and_o bloody_a persecution_n of_o god_n church_n and_o people_n commit_v by_o papist_n about_o 400_o year_n since_o pope_n innocent_a the_o three_o within_o the_o space_n of_o a_o few_o month_n make_v more_o than_o 200000_o of_o the_o faithful_a to_o be_v slay_v who_o they_o call_v albigenses_n in_o s._n bartholomewes_n massacre_n in_o the_o year_n 1572_o more_o than_o 80000_o man_n be_v slay_v in_o cold_a blood_n in_o a_o massacre_n in_o france_n within_o a_o few_o day_n be_v murder_v 70000_o person_n and_o how_o execrable_a &_o beyond_o all_o measure_n abominable_a and_o damnable_a be_v that_o their_o late_a plot_n of_o gunpowder-treason_n for_o the_o overthrow_n of_o the_o whole_a state_n of_o england_n in_o parliament_n at_o a_o blow_n and_o god_n know_v of_o how_o many_o state_n and_o kingdom_n beside_o yea_o what_o mean_v their_o holy_a league_n as_o they_o call_v it_o not_o long_o since_o make_v for_o the_o extirpation_n and_o root_a out_o of_o all_o protestancie_n do_v they_o not_o by_o all_o these_o show_v themselves_o to_o be_v utter_a enemy_n and_o that_o in_o the_o worst_a sort_n that_o can_v be_v to_o all_o civil_a state_n king_n and_o kingdom_n which_o reject_v the_o pope_n usurp_a supremacy_n and_o his_o deprave_a and_o antichristian_a religion_n why_o else_o also_o have_v they_o decree_v that_o faith_n be_v not_o to_o be_v keep_v with_o heretic_n and_o why_o else_o do_v they_o hold_v that_o before_o heretical_a judge_n and_o magistrate_n as_o they_o call_v they_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o they_o to_o swear_v with_o equivocation_n and_o mental_a reservation_n and_o in_o a_o false_a delude_a and_o deceitful_a manner_n and_o why_o else_o do_v they_o dislike_v and_o disallow_v subject_n not_o only_o to_o take_v the_o oath_n of_o supremacy_n but_o the_o oath_n also_o of_o allegiance_n when_o in_o very_a deed_n and_o of_o right_a neither_o of_o both_o aught_o to_o be_v refuse_v what_o also_o mean_v the_o resort_n and_o come_n of_o popish_a priest_n and_o jesuit_n into_o protestant_a kingdom_n under_o colour_n and_o pretence_n of_o religion_n be_v it_o not_o to_o make_v a_o party_n for_o the_o pope_n or_o some_o of_o his_o confederate_n against_o a_o fit_a time_n and_o do_v it_o not_o also_o tend_v to_o sedition_n and_o treason_n in_o a_o commonweal_n what_o do_v the_o pope_n claim_n to_o depose_v king_n and_o to_o give_v away_o their_o kingdom_n when_o and_o to_o who_o he_o list_v tend_v unto_o but_o to_o the_o set_n of_o prince_n together_o by_o the_o ear_n aswell_o as_o subject_n to_o rebel_v against_o their_o lawful_a sovereign_n do_v not_o all_o these_o thing_n tend_v to_o the_o overthrow_n aswell_o of_o civil_a state_n and_o civil_a justice_n as_o of_o religion_n and_o of_o kingdom_n and_o commonweal_n aswell_o as_o of_o god_n church_n and_o which_o make_v the_o matter_n yet_o more_o and_o indeed_o most_o odious_a all_o this_o they_o do_v under_o pretence_n of_o christianity_n and_o of_o a_o catholic_a cause_n when_o it_o be_v nothing_o so_o but_z clean_o contrariwise_o extreme_o devilish_a and_o antichristian_a let_v then_o every_o equal_a person_n now_o judge_n whether_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n that_o thus_o wrong_v god_n his_o church_n and_o religion_n and_o not_o only_a bishop_n but_o all_o king_n prince_n and_o emperor_n also_o their_o people_n kingdom_n and_o commonwealth_n and_o that_o thus_o intolerable_o abuse_v the_o whole_a christian_a world_n and_o yet_o for_o all_o that_o inflexible_o persist_v therein_o without_o any_o remorse_n or_o repentance_n show_v yea_o which_o with_o all_o his_o power_n and_o strength_n justify_v uphold_v &_o defend_v all_o those_o his_o wrong_n error_n abuse_n and_o impiety_n boast_v glory_v and_o delight_v in_o they_o be_v not_o right_o affirm_v to_o be_v the_o man_n of_o sin_n the_o son_n of_o perdition_n and_o the_o very_a undoubted_a grand_fw-fr antichrist_n in_o all_o respect_n the_o conclusion_n to_o the_o same_o pretend_a catholic_n now_o then_o it_o appear_v very_o clear_o by_o the_o premise_n that_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n who_o his_o blind_a follower_n so_o much_o adore_v and_o reverence_v be_v the_o very_a grand_a antichrist_n and_o that_o the_o popish_a city_n of_o rome_n whereof_o he_o be_v the_o head_n and_o ruler_n be_v undoubted_o the_o whore_n of_o babylon_n mention_v in_o the_o revelation_n of_o s._n john_n what_o scruple_n or_o doubt_n shall_v you_o or_o any_o of_o you_o conceive_v to_o make_v all_o the_o good_a haste_n you_o may_v to_o forsake_v that_o grand_a antichrist_n &_o that_o his_o concubine_n the_o whore_n of_o babylon_n and_o all_o his_o priest_n jesuit_n bishop_n monk_n friar_n nun_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o that_o his_o antichristian_a rabble_n and_o to_o betake_v and_o apply_v yourselves_o with_o we_o to_o the_o embrace_v and_o follow_v of_o christ_n and_o
paschall_n the_o second_o will_v have_v war_n make_v upon_o the_o emperor_n promise_v to_o give_v remission_n of_o sin_n and_o assurance_n of_o everlasting_a life_n to_o all_o that_o will_v do_v it_o and_o on_o the_o other_o side_n to_o excommunicate_v all_o those_o that_o will_v show_v obedience_n to_o he_o they_o say_v thus_o because_o we_o keep_v the_o law_n of_o god_n they_o object_n against_o we_o that_o we_o transgress_v their_o new_a tradition_n but_o god_n say_v unto_o they_o why_o do_v you_o transgress_v the_o commandment_n of_o god_n by_o your_o tradition_n god_n command_v to_o give_v unto_o cesar_n the_o thing_n which_o be_v caesar_n and_o to_o god_n that_o which_o be_v god_n which_o s._n peter_n and_o s._n paul_n do_v likewise_o teach_v honour_n the_o king_n let_v every_o soul_n be_v subject_a to_o the_o high_a power_n he_o that_o command_v every_o soul_n to_o do_v this_o who_o do_v he_o exempt_v from_o this_o earthly_a power_n because_o therefore_o we_o honour_v the_o king_n and_o serve_v our_o lord_n and_o master_n in_o the_o simplicity_n of_o our_o heart_n be_v we_o therefore_o excommunicate_v &_o c_o who_o can_v reprehend_v a_o bishop_n for_o keep_v his_o faith_n and_o loyalty_n to_o his_o prince_n and_o yet_o they_o that_o tear_v in_o sunder_o the_o kingdom_n and_o priesthood_n with_o new_a schism_n and_o new_a tradition_n promise_v to_o absolve_v they_o from_o the_o sin_n of_o perjury_n that_o break_v their_o faith_n to_o their_o king_n suppose_v say_v they_o our_o emperor_n be_v a_o heretic_n yet_o be_v he_o not_o to_o be_v repel_v as_o such_o a_o one_o by_o we_o by_o take_v arm_n against_o he_o yea_o they_o allege_v that_o the_o prophet_n jeremy_n pray_v for_o nabuchadnezzar_n and_o s._n paul_n for_o nero_n and_o add_v further_o which_o of_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n have_v by_o his_o decree_n give_v authority_n that_o a_o bishop_n shall_v use_v the_o sword_n of_o war_n against_o any_o offender_n all_o from_o gregory_n the_o first_o use_v the_o spiritual_a sword_n alone_o unto_o the_o last_o gregory_n who_o be_v the_o first_o that_o arm_v himself_o and_o by_o his_o example_n other_o with_o the_o sword_n of_o war_n against_o the_o emperor_n &c_n &c_n you_o say_v that_o if_o a_o man_n be_v excommunicate_a for_o what_o cause_n soever_o if_o he_o die_v in_o that_o estaete_fw-la he_o be_v damn_v but_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n say_v they_o help_v we_o in_o this_o point_n who_o teach_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v power_n to_o absolve_v any_o that_o be_v unjust_o excommunicate_v by_o other_o if_o then_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n may_v do_v this_o who_o will_v say_v that_o god_n can_v absolve_v whosoever_o the_o pope_n have_v unjust_o excommunicate_v yea_o the_o pope_n curse_n of_o excommunication_n they_o make_v no_o reckon_n of_o but_o contemn_v and_o despise_v it_o but_o above_o all_o say_v they_o we_o fear_v that_o which_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n by_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o psalmist_n have_v say_v viz._n curse_a be_v all_o they_o that_o decline_v from_o his_o commandment_n that_o curse_n of_o excommunication_n which_o pope_n hildebrand_n odoardus_n and_o this_o three_o have_v by_o a_o new_a tradition_n indiscreete_o bring_v in_o we_o whole_o reject_v and_o we_o hold_v and_o reverence_v those_o first_o holy_a father_n unto_o this_o day_n who_o by_o the_o motion_n of_o god_n spirit_n not_o carry_v with_o their_o own_o affection_n have_v otherwise_o ordain_v etc._n etc._n forasmuch_o therefore_o as_o we_o stick_v to_o the_o ancient_a rule_n and_o be_v not_o carry_v away_o with_o every_o wind_n of_o doctrine_n we_o be_v call_v excommunicate_v false_a clerk_n etc._n etc._n howbeit_o let_v pope_n paschall_n lay_v aside_o his_o spirit_n of_o presumption_n and_o let_v he_o advise_o consider_v with_o his_o counsellor_n how_o from_o silvester_n to_o hildebrand_n the_o pope_n have_v obtain_v the_o chair_n at_o rome_n what_o and_o how_o many_o outrage_n have_v be_v commit_v by_o the_o ambition_n of_o that_o sea_n etc._n etc._n as_o for_o those_o legate_n à_fw-fr latere_fw-la who_o run_v through_o the_o world_n to_o fill_v their_o purse_n we_o say_v they_o whole_o reject_v they_o according_a to_o those_o counsel_n of_o africa_n hold_v in_o the_o time_n of_o zozimus_n caelestinus_n and_o boniface_n for_o that_o we_o may_v know_v theraby_n their_o fruit_n there_o proceee_v from_o their_o legation_n no_o correction_n of_o manner_n or_o amendment_n of_o life_n but_o the_o slaughter_n of_o man_n and_o the_o spoil_n of_o god_n church_n etc._n etc._n that_o there_o shall_v be_v such_o desolation_n of_o the_o church_n such_o oppression_n of_o the_o poor_a and_o widow_n such_o cruelty_n such_o rapine_n and_o which_o be_v worse_o such_o effusion_n of_o blood_n without_o respect_n of_o good_a and_o evil_a and_o all_o this_o and_o worse_o than_o all_o this_o do_v by_o the_o commandment_n of_o the_o pope_n who_o will_v believe_v it_o if_o his_o own_o mouth_n have_v not_o speak_v it_o we_o remain_v astonish_v at_o the_o novelty_n of_o these_o thing_n and_o we_o inquire_v from_o whence_o this_o new_a example_n shall_v come_v that_o the_o preacher_n of_o peace_n with_o his_o own_o mouth_n and_o the_o hand_n of_o another_o man_n shall_v make_v war_n against_o the_o church_n of_o god_n etc._n etc._n where_o further_o they_o direct_o affirm_v rome_n to_o be_v babylon_n and_o say_v that_o the_o apostle_n so_o call_v it_o as_o foresee_v by_o a_o prophetical_a spirit_n the_o confusion_n of_o that_o dissension_n wherewith_o the_o church_n at_o this_o day_n be_v tear_v in_o piece_n etc._n etc._n and_o a_o great_a deal_n more_o be_v speak_v in_o that_o epistle_n of_o they_o which_o though_o it_o be_v long_a and_o large_a be_v worthy_a the_o read_n over_o and_o this_o no_o doubt_n move_v the_o bishop_n of_o florence_n also_o in_o the_o year_n 1106_o paschalis_n public_o to_o preach_v that_o antichrist_n be_v bear_v and_o then_o in_o esse_fw-la which_o pope_n paschall_n understanding_n of_o and_o be_v much_o grieve_v therewith_o take_v the_o pain_n to_o go_v himself_o in_o person_n to_o florence_n to_o stop_v the_o mouth_n of_o this_o bishop_n and_o fear_v as_o it_o seem_v to_o stir_v in_o the_o matter_n too_o much_o content_v himself_o only_o to_o admonish_v he_o to_o desist_v from_o this_o bold_a enterprise_n it●l_fw-la lest_o otherwise_o indeed_o the_o truth_n of_o that_o matter_n shall_v more_o strong_o break_v out_o but_o yet_o further_o about_o the_o year_n 1150._o the_o letter_n of_o the_o emperor_n frederick_n barbarossa_n to_o the_o prince_n of_o germany_n be_v sufficient_o know_v wherein_o he_o show_v unto_o they_o that_o the_o pope_n have_v no_o other_o drift_n but_o to_o set_v his_o foot_n upon_o the_o emperor_n head_n that_o so_o he_o may_v the_o more_o easy_o overcome_v the_o member_n and_o upon_o this_o it_o be_v frisingensis_n say_v radevicus_n that_o the_o pope_n be_v not_o ashamed_a to_o maintain_v that_o the_o emperor_n be_v his_o man_n and_o hold_v the_o empire_n of_o he_o yea_o the_o pope_n be_v go_v so_o far_o say_v aventinus_n that_o they_o affect_v both_o domination_n and_o deity_n histor_n so_o that_o they_o will_v be_v fear_v of_o all_o as_o god_n yea_o more_o than_o god_n pretend_v that_o they_o be_v not_o bind_v to_o give_v account_n of_o their_o action_n to_o any_o that_o among_o they_o be_v many_o antichrist_n and_o that_o indeed_o there_o be_v none_o more_o pernicious_a to_o the_o christian_a religion_n than_o the_o pope_n the_o same_o emperor_n in_o his_o letter_n to_o king_n wencislaus_n say_v that_o the_o high_a bishop_n of_o babylon_n that_o be_v of_o rome_n do_v sit_v long_o over_o the_o temple_n of_o god_n and_o seize_v upon_o the_o divinity_n that_o to_o please_v the_o desire_n of_o these_o false_a christ_n th●_n prince_n do_v ruinate_v one_o another_o and_o all_o state_n be_v in_o a_o combustion_n that_o they_o be_v blind_v which_o see_v not_o that_o they_o be_v cruel_a wolf'_v which_o under_o sheep_n clothing_n spoil_v the_o flock_n of_o christ._n and_o that_o this_o be_v the_o judgement_n also_o even_o of_o sundry_a of_o the_o german_a church_n as_o well_o as_o of_o the_o emperor_n appear_v by_o the_o oration_n of_o a_o archbishop_n to_o the_o state_n of_o the_o empire_n imperij_fw-la for_o say_v he_o he_o that_o be_v the_o servant_n of_o servant_n as_o if_o he_o be_v god_n covet_v to_o be_v the_o lord_n of_o lord_n he_o disclaim_v the_o counsel_n of_o his_o brethren_n or_o rather_o of_o his_o lord_n he_o fear_v lest_o he_o shall_v be_v force_v to_o give_v account_n of_o that_o which_o he_o do_v and_o usurp_v every_o day_n over_o the_o law_n he_o utter_v great_a thing_n as_o if_o he_o be_v god_n he_o coyn_v new_a devise_n in_o his_o mind_n to_o appropriate_v the_o empire_n to_o himself_o
offer_v up_o christ_n every_o day_n or_o often_o and_o that_o in_o a_o bodily_a manner_n and_o this_o sacrifice_n so_o offer_v by_o they_o they_o also_o say_v be_v propitiatory_a and_o take_v away_o the_o sin_n of_o man_n which_o be_v most_o intolerable_o blasphemous_a against_o that_o sacrifice_n of_o christ._n his_o all-sufficient_a mediation_n and_o intercession_n they_o also_o oppugn_v by_o make_v many_o mediator_n and_o intercessor_n beside_o he_o as_o namely_o the_o virgin_n mary_n and_o other_o saint_n and_o angel_n for_o who_o intercession_n sake_n they_o desire_v god_n to_o hear_v they_o and_o to_o grant_v their_o request_n the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n the_o papacy_n likewise_o oppugn_v for_o they_o will_v not_o suffer_v his_o church_n to_o be_v rule_v and_o govern_v by_o his_o own_o word_n and_o by_o such_o order_n rule_n and_o law_n as_o he_o in_o his_o scripture_n have_v ordain_v but_o according_a to_o the_o canon_n rule_n and_o pleasure_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o according_a to_o his_o constitution_n and_o ordinance_n yea_o as_o for_o the_o law_n and_o ordinance_n of_o god_n the_o pope_n partly_o dispense_v with_o they_o and_o partly_o abrogate_v they_o make_v they_o at_o his_o pleasure_n of_o no_o effect_n by_o his_o constitution_n tradition_n and_o devise_n yea_o he_o take_v to_o himself_o to_o be_v king_n and_o head_n of_o the_o whole_a militant_a church_n and_o all_o the_o authority_n to_o the_o head_n and_o king_n of_o the_o church_n belong_v and_o that_o without_o any_o warrant_n at_o all_o from_o christ_n like_o a_o notable_a traitor_n and_o usurper_n for_o which_o cause_n it_o be_v that_o he_o also_o destroy_v so_o much_o as_o he_o can_v all_o the_o good_a subject_n of_o this_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n even_o his_o best_a saint_n and_o servant_n be_v they_o king_n prince_n or_o whosoever_o and_o thus_o you_o see_v how_o he_o oppugn_v christ_n every_o manner_n of_o way_n both_o in_o respect_n of_o his_o person_n and_o in_o respect_n of_o his_o office_n and_o that_o not_o open_o and_o profess_o but_o in_o a_o cunning_a close_a and_o covert_a manner_n that_o be_v in_o such_o a_o sort_n as_o belong_v to_o antichrist_n and_o antichristian_a people_n to_o do_v 4_o it_o be_v further_a say_v in_o this_o text_n where_o antichrist_n be_v describe_v that_o he_o shall_v be_v exalt_v above_o all_o that_o be_v call_v god_n or_o that_o be_v worship_v observe_v that_o he_o do_v not_o say_v that_o he_o shall_v be_v exalt_v above_o god_n 2.4_o but_o above_o every_o one_o that_o be_v call_v god_n for_o it_o be_v one_o thing_n to_o be_v god_n essential_o and_o another_o thing_n to_o be_v call_v god_n or_o to_o have_v the_o name_n of_o god_n or_o god_n attribute_v to_o he_o who_o then_o be_v the_o man_n that_o be_v in_o scripture_n call_v god_n or_o god_n 22.28_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o they_o be_v king_n prince_n &_o other_o such_o like_a ruler_n and_o magistrate_n now_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o above_o all_o these_o the_o pope_n be_v exalt_v yea_o even_o above_o the_o emperor_n themselves_o for_o he_o claim_v a_o supremacy_n above_o they_o all_o take_v upon_o he_o to_o depose_v king_n prince_n and_o emperor_n and_o to_o give_v away_o their_o kingdom_n empire_n and_o dominion_n at_o his_o pleasure_n o_o damnable_a and_o intolerable_a pride_n in_o a_o bishop_n do_v ever_o s._n peter_n who_o successor_n he_o pretend_v to_o be_v thus_o detestable_o magnify_v and_o exalt_v himself_o all_o the_o christian_a world_n know_v 14._o that_o saint_n peter_n be_v of_o another_o and_o more_o humble_a spirit_n not_o exalt_v himself_o above_o but_o subiect_v himself_o evermore_o unto_o and_o under_o the_o authority_n of_o king_n prince_n and_o emperor_n and_o teach_v all_o people_n likewise_o this_o duty_n of_o subjection_n and_o obedience_n and_o so_o do_v s._n paul_n also_o yea_o all_o bishop_n 3.1_o and_o even_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n themselves_o aswell_o as_o the_o rest_n be_v in_o ancient_a time_n subject_a to_o the_o emperor_n and_o the_o emperor_n command_v over_o they_o the_o emperor_n writ_n say_v hierome_n cause_v the_o bishop_n ●_o aswell_o of_o the_o east_n as_o of_o the_o west_n to_o draw_v to_o rome_n this_o be_v say_v eusebius_n a_o copy_n of_o the_o emperor_n writ_n whereby_o he_o command_v a_o council_n to_o be_v keep_v in_o rome_n note_v that_o he_o say_v he_o command_v it_o 17._o yea_o he_o so_o command_v a_o council_n that_o pope_n leo_n himself_o excuse_v his_o absence_n before_o the_o emperor_n the_o emperor_n constantine_n say_v sozomen_n send_v out_o his_o letter_n unto_o all_o the_o ruler_n of_o the_o church_n 17._o that_o they_o shall_v all_o meet_v at_o nice_a upon_o a_o day_n unto_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o apostolic_a see_v unto_o macarius_n the_o bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n and_o unto_o julius_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n 15._o etc._n etc._n we_o command_v say_v justinian_n the_o emperor_n the_o most_o holy_a archbishop_n and_o patriarch_n of_o rome_n of_o constantinople_n of_o alexandria_n of_o antioch_n and_o of_o jerusalem_n etc._n etc._n see_v then_o that_o all_o bishop_n and_o even_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n aswell_o as_o the_o rest_n be_v in_o ancient_a time_n subject_a to_o king_n prince_n 1_o and_o emperor_n as_o to_o the_o high_a power_n so_o ordain_v of_o god_n over_o they_o what_o monstrous_a pride_n be_v it_o now_o in_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n so_o high_o to_o magnify_v and_o advance_v himself_o as_o to_o claim_v and_o arrogate_v to_o himself_o a_o supremacy_n and_o authority_n over_o they_o all_o epis●_n insomuch_o that_o it_o be_v register_v of_o he_o in_o his_o own_o record_n that_o he_o be_v so_o many_o time_n great_a than_o the_o emperor_n as_o the_o sun_n be_v great_a than_o the_o moon_n be_v it_o not_o then_o high_a time_n and_o more_o than_o time_n for_o all_o to_o renounce_v and_o to_o be_v ashamed_a of_o such_o a_o unholy_a father_n who_o pride_n by_o no_o pretence_n can_v be_v excuse_v and_o be_v so_o superlative_o ill_a as_o that_o it_o be_v unmatchable_a 5_o for_o indeed_o long_o before_o this_o his_o usurp_a and_o take_v to_o himself_o a_o supremacy_n over_o all_o king_n prince_n and_o emperor_n to_o who_o of_o right_n and_o duty_n he_o ought_v to_o be_v subject_a do_v his_o pride_n appear_v and_o show_v itself_o in_o take_v upon_o he_o a_o supremacy_n over_o all_o bishop_n and_o patriarch_n who_o be_v his_o equal_n so_o that_o he_o will_v be_v call_v universal_a priest_n or_o universal_a bishop_n chief_a bishop_n &_o head_n of_o the_o whole_a universal_a church_n of_o christ_n upon_o earth_n and_o by_o other_o such_o like_a lofty_a and_o supereminent_a title_n and_o yet_o when_o john_n the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n affect_v that_o title_n of_o universal_a bishop_n over_o all_o you_o may_v remember_v what_o gregory_n himself_o the_o then_o bishop_n of_o rome_n speak_v namely_o thus_o i_o speak_v it_o confident_o 30._o that_o whosoever_o call_v himself_o the_o universal_a bishop_n or_o desire_v to_o be_v so_o call_v he_o be_v in_o that_o his_o elation_n the_o forerunner_n of_o antichrist_n because_o in_o that_o his_o pride_n he_o set_v himself_o before_o other_o again_o he_o say_v none_o of_o my_o predecessor_n bishop_n of_o rome_n 36._o ●ver_o consent_v to_o use_v this_o ungodly_a name_n no_o bishop_n of_o rome_n over_o take_v upon_o he_o this_o name_n of_o singularity_n we_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n will_v not_o receive_v this_o honour_n be_v offer_v unto_o we_o again_o write_v unto_o eulogius_n he_o say_v thus_o behold_v even_o in_o the_o preface_n of_o your_o letter_n eulog_n you_o have_v write_v the_o word_n of_o a_o proud_a appellation_n name_v i_o the_o universal_a pope_n notwithstanding_o i_o have_v forbid_v it_o i_o beseech_v your_o holiness_n to_o do_v so_o no_o more_o for_o whatsoever_o be_v give_v to_o any_o other_o above_o reason_n the_o same_o be_v take_v from_o yourselves_o yea_o it_o be_v further_o record_v even_o in_o gratian_n himself_o that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n may_v not_o be_v call_v universal_a bishop_n sed_fw-la here_o than_o you_o may_v perceive_v how_o shameless_o the_o popish_a church_n abuse_v some_o place_n of_o scripture_n wrest_v they_o for_o the_o maintenance_n of_o this_o their_o pope_n claim_v supremacy_n and_o universality_n over_o all_o bishop_n and_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o christ._n as_o first_o they_o allege_v that_o say_n of_o christ_n to_o peter_n where_o after_o that_o christ_n have_v demand_v of_o his_o apostle_n who_o do_v you_o say_v that_o i_o be_o and_o that_o peter_n have_v answer_v in_o the_o name_n of_o they_o all_o 19_o say_v thou_o be_v christ_n the_o son_n of_o the_o live_a god_n christ_n say_v unto_o he_o bless_a art_n thou_o simon_n the_o son_n of_o jonas_n for_o flesh_n and_o blood_n have_v not_o reveal_v this_o
remain_v a_o husband_n and_o consequent_o whatsoever_o other_o do_v his_o wife_n that_o owe_v he_o special_a duty_n and_o respect_n be_v not_o to_o withdraw_v her_o duty_n and_o obedience_n but_o be_v still_o to_o perform_v it_o unto_o he_o as_o to_o her_o husband_n if_o the_o master_n be_v excommunicate_a and_o that_o other_o therefore_o do_v withdraw_v their_o company_n from_o he_o yet_o be_v not_o his_o servant_n to_o withdraw_v his_o duty_n and_o service_n from_o he_o for_o notwithstanding_o excommunication_n he_o still_o be_v and_o remain_v a_o master_n to_o his_o servant_n and_o consequent_o notwithstanding_o excommunication_n he_o be_v still_o of_o all_o his_o servant_n to_o be_v obey_v as_o a_o master_n in_o like_a sort_n if_o a_o king_n be_v excommunicate_a and_o that_o therefore_o other_o king_n and_o prince_n and_o such_o as_o owe_v he_o no_o subjection_n do_v withdraw_v themselves_o from_o he_o yet_o may_v not_o his_o own_o subject_n withdraw_v their_o subjection_n duty_n and_o obedience_n inasmuch_o as_o notwithstanding_o excommunication_n he_o still_o be_v and_o remain_v a_o king_n to_o his_o subject_n and_o consequent_o be_v of_o they_o still_o to_o be_v honour_v and_o obey_v as_o their_o king_n but_o so_o as_o the_o pope_n may_v serve_v his_o own_o turn_n and_o erect_v and_o establish_v to_o himself_o a_o throne_n and_o kingdom_n upon_o earth_n above_o all_o king_n prince_n and_o emperor_n of_o the_o world_n which_o be_v the_o chief_a or_o only_o mark_v he_o shoot_v at_o what_o care_v he_o what_o or_o who_o or_o how_o he_o do_v abuse_v be_v they_o king_n or_o subject_n or_o whosoever_o yea_o it_o be_v too_o well_o know_v to_o the_o world_n that_o some_o of_o his_o cardinal_n priest_n and_o jesuit_n have_v be_v so_o monstrous_a as_o to_o persuade_v subject_n to_o lay_v violent_a hand_n upon_o and_o to_o murder_v their_o own_o sovereign_n account_v it_o forsooth_o to_o be_v a_o matter_n meritorious_a to_o commit_v such_o abominable_a and_o loathsome_a villainy_n in_o their_o pretend_a catholic_a but_o indeed_o most_o devilish_a and_o antichristian_a cause_n if_o any_o make_v doubt_n hereof_o let_v parry_n ballard_n babington_n and_o sundry_a other_o execute_v in_o the_o late_a queen_n elizabeth_n day_n be_v witness_n hereof_o and_o let_v also_o that_o late_a most_o execrable_a plot_n and_o intention_n of_o they_o to_o blow_v up_o the_o parliament_n house_n in_o england_n and_o all_o that_o shall_v be_v in_o it_o with_o gunpowder_n likewise_o bear_v witness_n hereof_o to_o all_o posterity_n how_o then_o can_v such_o a_o religion_n which_o under_o colour_n of_o be_v catholic_a and_o under_o pretence_n of_o a_o catholic_a cause_n when_o nevertheless_o it_o be_v nothing_o so_o but_o the_o clean_a contrary_n allow_v warrant_v command_v and_o commend_v rebellion_n treason_n and_o murder_n of_o christian_a &_o protestant_a king_n and_o prince_n and_o their_o people_n as_o a_o matter_n good_a and_o meritorious_a be_v but_o most_o detestable_a and_o damnable_a and_o what_o can_v the_o pope_n be_v the_o approver_n allower_n and_o chief_a in_o this_o business_n and_o for_o who_o sake_n all_o this_o be_v do_v be_v but_o the_o grand_a antichrist_n where_o also_o you_o may_v further_o understand_v that_o the_o popish_a priest_n jesuit_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o that_o order_n be_v as_o they_o be_v no_o minister_n of_o christ_n but_o of_o antichrist_n can_v therefore_o give_v to_o none_o of_o you_o any_o absolution_n or_o remission_n of_o your_o sin_n but_o do_v rather_o augment_v enlarge_v and_o increase_v your_o sin_n so_o much_o the_o more_o as_o they_o must_v needs_o by_o such_o your_o unlawful_a resort_v to_o they_o so_o that_o hereafter_o you_o shall_v do_v well_o to_o forbear_v and_o leave_v off_o your_o eare-christ_n or_o auricular_a confession_n to_o they_o which_o have_v also_o no_o commandment_n or_o institution_n from_o christ_n but_o be_v only_o a_o humane_a devise_n whereunto_o none_o be_v necessary_o tie_v which_o thing_n be_v so_o clear_a that_o their_o own_o canon_n law_n affirm_v 19.18_o that_o it_o be_v take_v up_o only_o by_o a_o certain_a tradition_n and_o not_o by_o any_o authority_n of_o the_o old_a or_o new_a testament_n panormitan_n likewise_o say_v that_o opinion_n of_o the_o canon_n law_n great_o please_v he_o because_o he_o find_v no_o manifest_a authority_n that_o ever_o god_n or_o christ_n command_v we_o to_o confess_v our_o sin_n to_o a_o priest_n and_o rhenanus_fw-la and_o erasmus_n also_o affirm_v that_o christ_n ordain_v it_o not_o m●ctarius_n bishop_n of_o constantinople_n upon_o a_o accident_n that_o fall_v out_o at_o confession_n put_v it_o clean_o down_o in_o his_o church_n and_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o east_n do_v the_o like_a in_o they_o which_o those_o godly_a ancient_a bishop_n will_v never_o have_v do_v nor_o lawful_o can_v have_v do_v if_o it_o have_v be_v god_n own_o ordinance_n and_o institution_n as_o for_o the_o confession_n of_o sin_n which_o they_o make_v that_o come_v to_o be_v baptize_v of_o s._n john_n baptist_n it_o be_v voluntary_a and_o public_a and_o no_o private_a or_o auricular_a confession_n and_o so_o be_v also_o their_o confession_n voluntary_a and_o public_a and_o not_o secret_a or_o auricular_a which_o be_v mention_v in_o act_n 19_o it_o be_v true_a that_o s._n james_n say_v 5.16_o confess_v your_o fault_n one_o to_o another_o and_o pray_v one_o for_o another_o that_o you_o may_v be_v heal_v but_o this_o no_o more_o tie_v you_o to_o confess_v your_o fault_n or_o sin_n to_o a_o priest_n then_o to_o another_o man_n yea_o it_o no_o more_o tie_v you_o if_o you_o well_o observe_v the_o word_n to_o confess_v your_o sin_n to_o a_o priest_n then_z ●t_z t●eth_v a_o priest_n to_o confess_v his_o sin_n to_o you_o for_o by_o these_o word_n christian●_n be_v charge_v to_o confess_v their_o sin_n one_o to_o another_o as_o they_o be_v likewise_o there_o charge_v to_o pray_v one_o for_o another_o i_o grant_v that_o in_o the_o ancient_a church_n such_o as_o be_v public_a offender_n do_v for_o those_o their_o open_a and_o public_a offence_n public_a penance_n by_o public_a and_o open_a confession_n of_o they_o in_o the_o congregation_n with_o sorrow_n for_o the_o same_o and_o ask_v forgiveness_n first_o of_o god_n then_o of_o the_o church_n or_o congregation_n which_o they_o have_v so_o offend_v after_o which_o public_a confession_n and_o penance_n and_o satisfaction_n so_o make_v to_o the_o church_n or_o congregation_n where_o the_o offence_n be_v commit_v they_o be_v again_o reconcile_v and_o receive_v absolution_n by_o a_o public_a pronounce_v of_o it_o upon_o that_o their_o repentance_n declare_v which_o kind_n of_o public_a confession_n and_o open_a penance_n and_o absolution_n thereupon_o be_v also_o observe_v in_o the_o reform_a &_o protestant_a church_n but_o this_o no_o way_n serve_v to_o prove_v your_o private_a secret_a and_o auricular_a confession_n yea_o it_o rather_o make_v against_o it_o because_o this_o be_v public_a yet_o if_o any_o think_v that_o a_o private_a confession_n to_o a_o minister_n of_o christ_n be_v sometime_o and_o in_o some_o case_n convenient_a and_o meet_a to_o be_v use_v the_o protestant_n in_o their_o learned_a and_o godly_a work_n against_o the_o papist_n have_v tell_v you_o that_o they_o do_v not_o dislike_v it_o but_o well_o allow_v and_o commend_v it_o so_o often_o as_o burden_n of_o conscience_n oppress_v any_o man_n for_o any_o sin_n by_o he_o commit_v to_o utter_v those_o his_o grief_n and_o confess_v his_o sin_n which_o wound_v he_o so_o sore_o either_o to_o any_o faithful_a minister_n of_o christ_n or_o to_o any_o other_o skilful_a godly_a and_o discreet_a christian_a whosoever_o thereby_o to_o receive_v help_n remedy_n and_o consolation_n caietan_n himself_o though_o he_o like_v well_o 20._o with_o we_o of_o a_o voluntary_a confession_n which_o be_v not_o force_v or_o command_v yet_o express_o deny_v this_o popish_a manner_n of_o auricular_a confession_n to_o be_v of_o christ_n institution_n and_o indeed_o the_o minister_n of_o christ_n may_v very_o well_o pronounce_v absolution_n or_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n upon_o a_o free_a and_o voluntary_a confession_n though_o they_o bind_v not_o man_n by_o a_o law_n of_o necessity_n at_o certain_a time_n of_o the_o year_n to_o make_v such_o a_o confession_n unto_o they_o as_o be_v use_v and_o urge_v in_o the_o papacy_n after_o a_o tyrannical_a manner_n this_o christian_a moderate_a and_o allowable_a course_n do_v the_o protestant_a minister_n hold_v in_o their_o receive_n of_o any_o confession_n as_o also_o they_o forgive_v not_o sin_n absolute_o and_o at_o pleasure_n but_o only_o as_o be_v before_o say_v ministerial_o and_o declarative_o and_o with_o a_o limitation_n viz._n so_o as_o they_o have_v a_o right_n and_o lively_a faith_n and_o a_o true_a repentance_n to_o who_o they_o pronounce_v their_o absolution_n but_o to_o proceed_v and_o
white_a field_n among_o who_o there_o be_v contention_n about_o the_o order_n of_o easter_n for_o lasreanus_n the_o abbot_n of_o the_o monastery_n of_o leighlin_n unto_o who_o there_o be_v subject_a a_o thousand_o and_o five_o hundred_o monk_n defend_v the_o new_a order_n that_o late_o come_v from_o rome_n but_o other_o defend_v the_o old_a this_o lasreanus_n or_o lazerianus_n be_v the_o man_n who_o in_o other_o legend_n of_o no_o great_a credit_n than_o this_o we_o now_o have_v in_o hand_n be_v report_v to_o have_v be_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n legate_n in_o ireland_n and_o be_v common_o account_v to_o have_v be_v the_o first_o bishop_n of_o the_o church_n of_o leighlin_n his_o principal_a antagonist_n at_o this_o meeting_n be_v one_o munna_n founder_v of_o the_o monastery_n which_o from_o he_o be_v call_v teach-munna_a that_o be_v the_o house_n of_o munna_n in_o the_o bishopric_n of_o meath_z who_o will_v needs_o bring_v this_o question_n to_o the_o same_o kind_n of_o trial_n here_o that_o augustin_n be_v say_v to_o have_v do_v in_o england_n in_o defence_n of_o the_o roman_a order_n bede_n tell_v we_o that_o augustin_n make_v this_o motion_n to_o the_o british_a bishop_n for_o a_o final_a conclusion_n of_o the_o business_n 2._o let_v we_o beseech_v god_n which_o make_v man_n to_o dwell_v of_o one_o mind_n together_o in_o their_o father_n house_n that_o he_o will_v vouchsafe_v by_o some_o heavenly_a sign_n to_o make_v know_v unto_o we_o what_o tradition_n be_v to_o be_v follow_v &_o by_o what_o way_n we_o may_v hasten_v to_o the_o entry_n of_o his_o kingdom_n let_v some_o sick_a man_n be_v bring_v hither_o and_o by_o who_o prayer_n he_o shall_v be_v cure_v let_v his_o faith_n and_o work_n be_v believe_v to_o be_v acceptable_a unto_o god_n and_o to_o be_v follow_v by_o all_o man_n now_o munna_n who_o stand_v in_o defence_n of_o the_o order_n former_o use_v by_o the_o british_a and_o irish_a make_v a_o more_o liberal_a proffer_n in_o this_o kind_n and_o leave_v lasreanus_n to_o his_o choice_n munnu_fw-fr let_v we_o dispute_v brief_o say_v he_o but_o in_o the_o name_n of_o god_n let_v we_o give_v judgement_n three_o thing_n be_v give_v to_o thy_o choice_n lasreanus_n two_o book_n shall_v be_v cast_v into_o the_o fire_n a_o book_n of_o the_o old_a order_n and_o of_o the_o new_a that_o we_o may_v see_v whether_o of_o they_o both_o shall_v be_v free_v from_o the_o fire_n or_o let_v two_o monk_n one_o of_o i_o and_o another_o of_o thou_o be_v shut_v up_o into_o one_o house_n and_o let_v the_o house_n be_v burn_v and_o we_o shall_v see_v which_o of_o they_o will_v escape_v untouched_a of_o the_o fire_n or_o let_v we_o go_v unto_o the_o grave_n of_o a_o just_a monk_n that_o be_v dead_a and_o raise_v he_o up_o again_o and_o let_v he_o tell_v we_o after_o what_o order_n we_o ought_v to_o celebrate_v easter_n this_o year_n but_o lasreanus_n be_v wise_a than_o so_o refuse_v to_o put_v so_o great_a a_o matter_n to_o that_o hazard_n and_o therefore_o return_v this_o grave_a answer_n unto_o munna_n if_o all_o be_v true_a that_o be_v in_o the_o legend_n ibid._n we_o will_v not_o go_v unto_o thy_o judgement_n because_o we_o know_v that_o for_o the_o greatness_n of_o thy_o labour_n and_o holiness_n if_o thou_o shall_v bid_v that_o mount_n marge_n shall_v be_v change_v into_o the_o place_n of_o the_o white_a field_n and_o the_o white_a field_n into_o the_o place_n of_o mount_n marge_n god_n will_v present_o do_v this_o for_o thy_o sake_n so_o prodigal_a do_v some_o make_v god_n to_o be_v of_o miracle_n and_o in_o a_o manner_n careless_a how_o they_o shall_v fall_v as_o if_o in_o the_o dispense_n of_o they_o he_o do_v respect_v the_o grace_v of_o person_n rather_o than_o of_o cause_n in_o what_o year_n this_o council_n of_o the_o white_a field_n be_v hold_v be_v not_o certain_o know_v nor_o yet_o whether_o s._n munna_n be_v that_o white_v wall_n of_o who_o we_o hear_v cummianus_fw-la complain_v the_o synod_n of_o strenshalch_n before_o mention_v be_v assemble_v long_o after_o at_o whitby_n call_v by_o the_o saxon_n streanesheale_n in_o yorkshire_n the_o 26._o year_n of_o our_o lord_n dclxiiii_o for_o the_o decision_n of_o the_o same_o question_n concern_v which_o in_o the_o life_n of_o wilfrid_n write_v at_o the_o commandment_n of_o acca_n who_o in_o the_o time_n of_o bede_n be_v bishop_n of_o hangustald_v or_o hexham_n in_o northumberland_n we_o read_v thus_o cottonianà_fw-la upon_o a_o certain_a time_n in_o the_o day_n of_o colman_n metropolitan_a bishop_n of_o the_o city_n of_o york_n oswi_n and_o alhfrid_n his_o son_n be_v king_n the_o abbot_n and_o priest_n and_o all_o the_o degree_n of_o ecclesiastical_a order_n meet_v together_o at_o the_o monastery_n which_o be_v call_v streaneshel_n in_o the_o presence_n of_o hilde_n the_o most_o godly_a mother_n of_o that_o abby_n in_o presence_n also_o of_o the_o king_n and_o the_o two_o bishop_n colman_n &_o aegelberht_n inquiry_n be_v make_v touch_v the_o observation_n of_o easter_n what_o be_v most_o right_a to_o be_v hold_v whether_o easter_n shall_v be_v keep_v according_a to_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o briton_n and_o the_o scot_n and_o all_o the_o northern_a part_n upon_o the_o lord_n day_n that_o come_v from_o the_o xiiii_o day_n of_o the_o moon_n until_o the_o xx._n or_o whether_o it_o be_v better_a that_o easter_n sunday_n shall_v be_v celebrate_v from_o the_o xv._n day_n of_o the_o moon_n until_o the_o xxi_o after_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o see_v apostolic_a time_n be_v give_v unto_o bishop_n colman_n in_o the_o first_o place_n as_o it_o be_v fit_a to_o deliver_v his_o reason_n in_o the_o audience_n of_o all_o who_o with_o a_o undaunted_a mind_n make_v his_o answer_n and_o say_v our_o father_n and_o their_o predecessor_n who_o be_v manifest_o inspire_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o columkille_n be_v do_v ordain_v that_o easter_n shall_v be_v celebrate_v upon_o the_o lord_n day_n that_o fall_v upon_o the_o xiiii_o moon_n follow_v the_o example_n of_o john_n the_o apostle_n and_o evangelist_n who_o lean_v upon_o the_o breast_n of_o our_o lord_n at_o his_o last_o supper_n and_o be_v call_v the_o lover_n of_o the_o lord_n he_o celebrate_v easter_n upon_o the_o xiiii_o day_n of_o the_o moon_n and_o we_o with_o the_o same_o confidence_n celebrate_v the_o same_o as_o his_o disciple_n polycarpus_n and_o other_o do_v neither_o dare_v we_o for_o our_o part_n neither_o will_v we_o change_v this_o bede_n relate_v his_o speech_n thus_o 25._o this_o easter_n which_o i_o use_v to_o observe_v i_o receive_v from_o my_o elder_n who_o do_v send_v i_o bishop_n hither_o which_o all_o our_o father_n man_n belove_v of_o god_n be_v know_v to_o have_v celebrate_v after_o the_o same_o manner_n which_o that_o it_o may_v not_o seem_v unto_o any_o to_o be_v contemn_v and_o reject_v it_o be_v the_o same_o which_o the_o bless_a evangelist_n john_n the_o disciple_n special_o belove_v by_o our_o lord_n with_o all_o the_o church_n which_o he_o do_v oversee_v be_v read_v to_o have_v celebrate_v fridegodus_fw-la who_o write_v the_o life_n of_o wilfride_n at_o the_o command_n of_o odo_n archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n express_v the_o same_o in_o verse_n after_o this_o manner_n cottonian_n nos_fw-la seriem_fw-la patriam_fw-la non_fw-la frivola_fw-la scripta_fw-la tenemus_fw-la discipulo_fw-la beati_fw-la eusebij_fw-la polycarpo_fw-it dante_o johannis_n ille_fw-la etenim_fw-la bis_fw-la septenae_fw-la sub_fw-la tempore_fw-la phaebae_n sanctum_fw-la praefixit_fw-la nobis_fw-la fore_fw-la pascha_fw-la colendum_fw-la atque_fw-la nefas_fw-la dixit_fw-la si_fw-la quis_fw-la contraria_fw-la sentit_fw-la on_o the_o contrary_a side_n wilfride_n object_v unto_o colman_n and_o his_o clerk_n of_o ireland_n that_o they_o with_o their_o complice_n the_o pict_n and_o the_o briton_n 25._o out_o of_o the_o two_o utmost_a isle_n and_o those_o not_o whole_a neither_o do_v with_o a_o foolish_a labour_n fight_v against_o the_o whole_a world_n ibid._n and_o if_o that_o columb_n of_o you_o say_v he_o yea_o and_o we_o also_o if_o he_o be_v christ_n be_v holy_a and_o powerful_a in_o virtue_n can_v he_o be_v prefer_v before_o the_o most_o bless_a prince_n of_o the_o apostle_n unto_o who_o the_o lord_n say_v thou_o be_v peter_n and_o upon_o this_o rock_n will_v i_o build_v my_o church_n and_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v not_o prevail_v against_o it_o and_o i_o will_v give_v unto_o thou_o the_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n which_o last_o word_n wrought_v much_o upon_o the_o simplicity_n of_o king_n oswy_n who_o fear_v that_o ibid._n when_o he_o shall_v come_v to_o the_o door_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n there_o will_v be_v none_o to_o open_v if_o he_o be_v displease_v who_o be_v prove_v to_o keep_v the_o key_n but_o prevayl_v nothing_o with_o bishop_n colman_n who_o
regem_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la crimen_fw-la loesae_fw-la maiestatis_fw-la quia_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la subditus_fw-la regis_fw-la the_o rebellion_n of_o a_o clergy_n man_n against_o the_o king_n be_v no_o treason_n because_o he_o be_v not_o the_o king_n subject_n and_o so_o likewise_o say_v bellarmine_n non_fw-la sunt_fw-la amplius_fw-la reges_fw-la clericorum_fw-la superiores_fw-la 28._o king_n be_v no_o long_o sovereign_n or_o superior_n to_o clergy_n man_n do_v not_o these_o appear_v to_o be_v most_o gross_a disloyal_a and_o detestable_a opinion_n but_o thus_o a_o new_a king_n be_v raise_v over_o the_o pope_n clergy_n that_o the_o scripture_n may_v be_v fulfil_v which_o say_v they_o have_v a_o king_n over_o they_o which_o be_v the_o angel_n of_o the_o bottomless_a pit_n who_o in_o hebrew_n be_v call_v abaddon_n 9.11_o and_o in_o greek_a apollyon_n that_o be_v in_o english_a a_o destroyer_n namely_o the_o degenerate_a bishop_n of_o rome_n that_o grand_a 〈◊〉_d as_o 〈…〉_z prove_v who_o have_v thus_o bereave_v and_o rob_v ●_z of_o 〈◊〉_d natural_a bear_v subject_n and_o of_o their_o ancient_a supremacy_n and_o most_o rightful_a authority_n over_o they_o 2_o that_o the_o king_n be_v a_o governor_n within_o his_o own_o kingdom_n and_o dominion_n be_v a_o matter_n so_o evident_a as_o that_o it_o need_v no_o proof_n for_o he_o be_v call_v rex_fw-la à_fw-la regendo_fw-la ●_o king_n in_o respect_n of_o his_o rule_n and_o government_n 14._o and_o s._n peter_n agree_v hereunto_o teach_v that_o not_o only_o the_o king_n but_o even_o other_o magistrate_n also_o that_o be_v under_o the_o king_n be_v governor_n and_o institute_v for_o the_o punishment_n of_o evil_a doer_n &_o for_o the_o praise_n of_o they_o that_o do_v well_o s._n paul_n also_o speak_v the_o like_a of_o prince_n or_o governor_n that_o bear_v the_o sword_n that_o they_o be_v not_o to_o be_v fear_v for_o good_a work_n but_o for_o evil_a 4._o will_v thou_o then_o be_v without_o fear_n of_o the_o power_n do_v well_o say_v he_o so_o shall_v thou_o have_v praise_n of_o the_o same_o for_o he_o be_v the_o minister_n of_o god_n for_o thy_o good_a but_o if_o thou_o do_v evil_a then_o fear_v for_o he_o bear_v not_o the_o sword_n in_o vain_a for_o he_o be_v the_o minister_n of_o god_n to_o take_v vengeance_n on_o he_o that_o do_v evil_a you_o here_o then_o clear_o perceive_v that_o king_n and_o prince_n be_v governor_n and_o 〈…〉_z before_o that_o they_o be_v supreme_a which_o be_v put_v together_o necessary_o conclude_v they_o to_o be_v under_o god_n the_o supreme_a governor_n within_o their_o own_o dominion_n now_o that_o their_o government_n and_o authority_n extend_v to_o cause_n ecclesiastical_a as_o well_o as_o 〈…〉_z be_v a_o thing_n likewise_o very_o manifest_a for_o as_o there_o be_v here_o no_o exception_n of_o any_o person_n declare_v so_o be_v there_o also_o no_o exception_n or_o difference_n put_v of_o any_o cause_n but_o whosoever_o transgress_v or_o offend_v or_o do_v evil_a be_v it_o in_o what_o kind_n of_o cause_n soever_o he_o be_v here_o make_v subject_a to_o this_o sword_n power_n and_o authority_n of_o king_n and_o prince_n 13.4_o and_o punishable_a by_o it_o and_o do_v not_o very_a reason_n itself_o also_o persuade_v this_o for_o even_o in_o christian_a state_n it_o be_v possible_a for_o bishop●_n and_o other_o ecclesiastical_a minister_n to_o transgress_v and_o offend_v as_o touch_v the_o execution_n and_o administration_n of_o their_o ecclesiastical_a office_n and_o function_n as_o well_o as_o other_o man_n may_v in_o their_o office_n and_o place_n as_o for_o example_n if_o they_o or_o any_o of_o they_o will_v not_o suffer_v a_o child_n or_o any_o other_o to_o be_v baptize_v which_o be_v not_o to_o be_v deny_v baptism_n or_o if_o they_o shall_v excommunicate_v any_o upon_o mere_a spleen_n and_o malice_n without_o any_o just_a cause_n or_o if_o after_o a_o just_a excommunication_n the_o person_n excommunicate_a shall_v afterward_o public_o testify_v his_o repentance_n and_o thereupon_o desire_v to_o be_v reconcile_v and_o receive_v again_o into_o the_o church_n and_o yet_o for_o all_o that_o shall_v most_o unjust_o be_v hold_v out_o and_o be_v deny_v absolution_n or_o reconciliation_n do_v not_o these_o and_o such_o like_a offence_n though_o commit_v by_o ecclesiastical_a person_n and_o in_o cause_n ecclesiastical_a deserve_v punishment_n by_o the_o civil_a sword_n and_o authority_n of_o a_o christian_a king_n if_o you_o say_v that_o such_o a_o offendor_n may_v be_v censure_v by_o such_o as_o be_v clergy_n man_n and_o have_v ecclesiastical_a authority_n over_o he_o that_o hinder_v not_o but_o that_o a_o king_n may_v nevertheless_o punish_v he_o also_o civil_o especial_o where_o the_o law_n of_o the_o kingdom_n do_v so_o permit_v or_o appoint_v for_o in_o such_o case_n without_o any_o wrong_n or_o injury_n may_v one_o and_o the_o self_n same_o offence_n be_v punish_v both_o way_n viz._n both_o civil_o and_o ecclesiastical_o yourselves_o do_v know_v that_o bishop_n and_o clergy_n man_n can_v by_o virtue_n of_o that_o their_o ecclesiastical_a office_n and_o authority_n punish_v any_o offender_n civil_o but_o only_o ecclesiastical_o as_o namely_o by_o deprivation_n or_o excommunication_n or_o such_o like_a censure_n of_o the_o church_n but_o king_n and_o prince_n punish_v offender_n in_o ecclesiastical_a cause_n after_o another_o sort_n namely_o not_o ecclesiastical_o as_o bishop_n do_v but_o civil_o as_o by_o corporal_a imprisonment_n pecuniary_a punishment_n and_o such_o like_a temporal_a pain_n belong_v to_o their_o authority_n so_o that_o both_o civil_a and_o ecclesiastical_a authority_n do_v and_o may_v well_o stand_v together_o without_o do_v any_o wrong_n yea_o as_o friend_n and_o helper_n the_o one_o to_o the_o other_o but_o to_o illustrate_v this_o matter_n yet_o further_o admit_v clergy_n man_n have_v excommunicate_v a_o man_n or_o sentence_v he_o to_o be_v deprive_v or_o pronounce_v he_o to_o be_v a_o heretic_n or_o do_v all_o they_o can_v against_o he_o by_o the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n and_o of_o the_o church_n censure_n and_o that_o nevertheless_o he_o still_o and_o evermore_o persist_v a_o scorner_n and_o contemner_n of_o all_o that_o they_o can_v do_v against_o he_o be_v it_o not_o meet_v and_o requisite_a think_v you_o that_o such_o a_o one_o shall_v be_v punish_v civil_o and_o by_o the_o king_n authority_n for_o what_o other_o remedy_n be_v there_o leave_v in_o such_o a_o case_n you_o see_v then_o how_o expedient_a and_o necessary_a the_o government_n and_o authority_n of_o a_o christian_a king_n be_v even_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o church_n and_o church_n affair_n as_o well_o as_o of_o the_o commonweal_n and_o commonweal_n cause_n and_o that_o in_o respect_n of_o offender_n in_o ecclesiastical_a cause_n that_o be_v unruly_a wilful_a obstinate_a and_o contemptuous_a the_o church_n have_v as_o much_o need_n of_o he_o as_o the_o commonweal_n while_o therefore_o the_o king_n punish_v offender_n in_o ecclesiastical_a cause_n not_o ecclesiastical_o and_o by_o church_n censure_n as_o clergy_n man_n do_v but_o civil_o and_o by_o a_o regal_a power_n and_o authority_n it_o be_v such_o a_o clear_a &_o evident_a a_o right_n etc._n as_o none_o can_v with_o any_o colour_n of_o reason_n gainsay_v or_o disallow_v yea_o even_o heathen_a and_o pagan_a king_n have_v this_o power_n and_o authority_n to_o make_v law_n and_o proclamation_n for_o the_o worship_n and_o service_n of_o the_o true_a god_n and_o to_o inflict_v punishment_n upon_o the_o breaker_n &_o violater_n of_o those_o their_o law_n and_o proclamation_n although_o they_o do_v not_o always_o put_v that_o their_o power_n and_o authority_n in_o execution_n for_o god_n as_o they_o ought_v but_o most_o common_o abuse_v it_o against_o he_o and_o yet_o sometime_o we_o see_v they_o do_v extend_v it_o and_o put_v it_o in_o execution_n for_o god_n as_o it_o be_v evident_a in_o the_o example_n of_o artashast_a king_n of_o persia_n nebuchadnezar_n king_n of_o babel_n and_o darius_n king_n of_o the_o m●des_n as_o also_o by_o some_o other_o heathen_a emperor_n mention_v in_o eusebius_n if_o then_o as_o be_v manifest_a heathen_a and_o pagan_a king_n have_v this_o power_n and_o authority_n albeit_o they_o do_v no●_n always_o extend_v it_o and_o put_v it_o in_o execution_n for_o god_n by_o what_o right_a or_o reason_n can_v it_o be_v deny_v to_o christian_a king_n and_o prince_n so_o to_o do_v yea_o by_o god_n own_o most_o gracious_a providence_n christian_a king_n and_o queen_n be_v to_o be_v nurse_v father_n and_o nurse_n mother_n to_o his_o church_n and_o religion_n 49.23_o for_o so_o the_o prophet_n isaiah_n direct_o witness_v and_o therefore_o be_v it_o that_o they_o not_o only_o may_v make_v law_n for_o christ_n for_o so_o s._n augustine_n likewise_o say_v that_o serviunt_fw-la reges_fw-la christo_fw-la leges_fw-la ferendo_fw-la pro_fw-la christo_fw-la 50._o king_n serve_v christ_n
decree_n of_o these_o former_a general_a counsel_n dare_v and_o do_v affirm_v the_o pope_n to_o be_v above_o all_o general_a counsel_n to_o be_v supreme_a judge_n over_o all_o and_o not_o subject_a to_o the_o judgement_n of_o any_o upon_o earth_n be_v not_o this_o intolerable_a pride_n and_o most_o abominable_a licentiousness_n and_o lawlesnesse_n in_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n and_o most_o gross_a notorious_a and_o palpable_a flattery_n in_o his_o follower_n the_o pope_n supremacy_n ecclesiastical_a then_o which_o he_o claim_v over_o all_o bishop_n and_o counsel_n and_o the_o civil_a supremacy_n which_o he_o likewise_o claim_v over_o all_o king_n and_o emperor_n appear_v to_o be_v not_o only_o a_o mere_a novelty_n but_o a_o thing_n also_o extreme_o injurious_a to_o all_o bishop_n and_o counsel_n and_o to_o all_o king_n prince_n and_o emperor_n also_o and_o be_v therefore_o just_o worthy_a of_o all_o to_o be_v detest_a and_o reject_v 6_o for_o must_v not_o the_o supremacy_n civil_a which_o he_o also_o claim_v over_o emperor_n king_n and_o prince_n to_o depose_v they_o from_o their_o crown_n and_o kingdom_n 8.15_o and_o to_o assoil_v their_o subject_n of_o their_o allegiance_n be_v a_o most_o strange_a and_o a_o most_o damnable_a impiety_n when_o god_n himself_o say_v thus_o by_o i_o king_n reign_n and_o not_o by_o the_o commission_n or_o permission_n of_o any_o pope_n and_o when_o in_o daniel_n a_o voice_n from_o heaven_n proclaim_v that_o it_o be_v not_o the_o pope_n but_o the_o most_o high_a that_o bear_v rule_v over_o the_o kingdom_n of_o man_n 4.29_o and_o give_v it_o to_o whomsoever_o he_o will_v and_o when_o moreover_o not_o the_o pope_n but_o god_n himself_o be_v he_o that_o be_v entitle_v 19.16_o king_n of_o king_n and_o lord_n of_o lord_n beside_o it_o be_v a_o thing_n clear_o out_o of_o the_o commission_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o consequent_o out_o of_o the_o commission_n of_o all_o bishop_n and_o other_o minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n for_o they_o be_v the_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n 16.19_o and_o not_o of_o earthly_a kingdom_n that_o be_v commit_v unto_o they_o and_o therefore_o it_o be_v not_o within_o the_o compass_n of_o this_o their_o divine_a and_o ecclesiastical_a commission_n to_o meddle_v with_o any_o earthly_a matter_n much_o less_o with_o earthly_a kingdom_n or_o to_o depose_v any_o king_n from_o their_o throne_n or_o to_o give_v away_o their_o kingdom_n or_o to_o disannul_v the_o duty_n and_o allegiance_n of_o subject_n which_o by_o the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o nature_n they_o owe_v unto_o their_o sovereign_n do_v any_o apostle_n yea_o or_o all_o the_o apostle_n together_o in_o ancient_a time_n take_v upon_o they_o to_o depose_v nero_n or_o any_o other_o emperor_n be_v he_o never_o so_o great_a a_o persecutor_n or_o be_v he_o never_o so_o wicked_a or_o do_v any_o bishop_n in_o the_o ancient_a church_n take_v upon_o they_o to_o depose_v any_o of_o they_o that_o be_v heretical_a arrian_n emperor_n in_o their_o time_n and_o persecuter_n of_o the_o oxthodox_n and_o right_a believe_a christian_n yea_o do_v any_o bishop_n or_o all_o the_o bishop_n in_o the_o world_n together_o take_v upon_o they_o to_o depose_v the_o emperor_n julian_n though_o a_o apostata_fw-la though_o a_o man_n anathematise_v though_o a_o most_o impious_a person_n and_o a_o scorner_n of_o christ_n and_o of_o all_o christian_a religion_n by_o this_o one_o precedent_n then_o of_o julian_n the_o apostata_fw-la if_o there_o be_v no_o other_o you_o may_v easy_o perceive_v that_o no_o excommunication_n or_o anathematization_n nor_o any_o power_n of_o the_o key_n whatsoever_o commit_v by_o christ_n to_o bishop_n &_o minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n have_v any_o force_n include_v in_o they_o to_o depose_v emperor_n king_n and_o prince_n be_v they_o never_o so_o wicked_a or_o adverse_a to_o christ_n or_o christianity_n yea_o that_o bishop_n in_o no_o sort_n neither_o direct_o nor_o indirect_o or_o in_o ordine_fw-la ad_fw-la spiritualia_fw-la as_o they_o speak_v or_o for_o advancement_n of_o any_o pretend_a or_o revera_n catholic_a cause_n have_v any_o such_o authority_n for_o julian_n still_o remain_v a_o emperor_n and_o his_o christian_a soldier_n and_o subject_n notwithstanding_o that_o he_o be_v so_o great_a a_o enemy_n to_o their_o religion_n be_v nevertheless_o obedient_a dutiful_a and_o serviceable_a unto_o he_o 124._o as_o s._n augustine_n also_o show_v and_o affirm_v so_o far_o off_o be_v they_o from_o rebel_a or_o withdraw_v their_o allegiance_n from_o he_o and_o so_o far_o off_o also_o be_v the_o bishop_n of_o those_o time_n from_o persuade_v abet_v or_o counsel_v any_o such_o wicked_a matter_n unto_o they_o yea_o whereas_o bellarmine_n and_o some_o other_o papist_n affirm_v pont._n that_o the_o christian_n in_o the_o primitive_a and_o those_o ancient_a church_n be_v therefore_o obedient_a because_o they_o want_v sufficient_a power_n and_o force_v to_o withstand_v their_o wicked_a emperor_n do_v they_o not_o herein_o speak_v more_o like_a politic_a atheist_n than_o christian_n divine_v where_o be_v obedience_n for_o conscience_n sake_n which_o god_n require_v of_o all_o christian_n 13.5_o as_o s._n paul_n witness_v if_o such_o popish_a doctrine_n as_o this_o be_v true_a but_o beside_o 37._o tertullian_n express_o confute_v it_o witness_v that_o such_o be_v the_o affection_n and_o disposition_n of_o the_o christian_n in_o those_o time_n be_v lead_v thereunto_o by_o duty_n &_o conscience_n as_o that_o they_o neither_o teach_v nor_o put_v in_o practice_n any_o course_n of_o disloyalty_n or_o disobedience_n or_o bare_a arm_n against_o their_o emperor_n albeit_o they_o have_v as_o he_o there_o show_v sufficient_a force_n to_o have_v do_v it_o yea_o the_o christian_n in_o those_o time_n notwithstanding_o all_o their_o great_a number_n &_o strength_n &_o their_o sufficient_a power_n to_o rebel_v if_o they_o have_v be_v so_o ill_o dispose_v be_v nevertheless_o so_o far_o from_o rebel_a or_o procure_v rebellion_n to_o be_v make_v against_o the_o emperor_n of_o their_o time_n that_o contrariwise_o they_o be_v quiet_a and_o suffer_v all_o thing_n patient_o and_o pray_v for_o he_o that_o almighty_a god_n will_v grant_v unto_o he_o a_o long_a life_n a_o secure_a reign_n safety_n in_o his_o court_n valiant_a soldier_n a_o faithful_a counsel_n dutiful_a subject_n 30._o a_o quiet_a kingdom_n and_o all_o those_o blessing_n and_o comfort_n that_o his_o heart_n can_v desire_v sigebert_n 1088._o mention_v the_o pope_n proceed_n against_o henry_n the_o emperor_n divers_a hundred_o year_n since_o say_v thus_o be_v it_o speak_v with_o the_o leave_n of_o all_o good_a man_n this_o novelty_n that_o i_o say_v not_o heresy_n have_v not_o as_o yet_o spring_v up_o in_o the_o world_n that_o god_n priest_n shall_v teach_v the_o people_n that_o they_o owe_v no_o subjection_n to_o evil_a prince_n opinion_n and_o though_o they_o have_v swear_v allegiance_n to_o he_o yet_o they_o owe_v he_o no_o fidelity_n nor_o shall_v be_v count_v perjure_a that_o devise_v against_o the_o king_n yea_o that_o he_o that_o obey_v he_o shall_v be_v count_v for_o excommunicate_v and_o he_o that_o do_v against_o the_o king_n shall_v be_v absolve_v from_o the_o guilt_n of_o wrong_n and_o perjury_n 84._o vincentius_n likewise_o testify_v the_o same_o matter_n where_o you_o see_v how_o direct_o they_o both_o condemn_v these_o traitorous_a and_o rebellious_a position_n of_o popery_n which_o be_v at_o this_o day_n by_o too_o many_o among_o they_o cherish_v and_o maintain_v for_o point_n of_o catholic_a doctrine_n and_o that_o notwithstanding_o the_o pretence_n of_o the_o pope_n authority_n and_o of_o a_o catholic_a cause_n they_o be_v long_o since_o condemn_v and_o account_v and_o record_v to_o be_v mere_a novelty_n if_o not_o heresy_n now_o than_o you_o perceive_v i_o trust_v that_o as_o the_o pope_n have_v no_o supremacy_n lawful_a in_o ecclesiasticis_fw-la so_o much_o less_o have_v he_o any_o supremacy_n lawful_a in_o temporalibus_fw-la within_o the_o king_n dominion_n or_o elsewhere_o within_o the_o dominion_n of_o any_o other_o king_n and_o i_o assure_v myself_o that_o such_o be_v your_o loyalty_n etc._n and_o such_o the_o odiousness_n and_o apparent_a untruth_n of_o the_o traitorous_a and_o rebellious_a position_n deliver_v in_o these_o late_a time_n by_o jesuit_n and_o such_o like_a popish_a teacher_n against_o king_n for_o maintenance_n of_o the_o pope_n pride_n that_o you_o unfeigned_o and_o utter_o abhor_v &_o detest_v those_o position_n of_o they_o together_o with_o their_o practice_n as_o they_o be_v indeed_o just_o worthy_a i_o will_v you_o do_v also_o detest_v the_o rest_n of_o their_o false_a doctrine_n as_o i_o hope_v upon_o better_a information_n you_o will_v even_o for_o truth_n sake_n and_o the_o safety_n of_o your_o own_o soul_n 7_o but_o to_o proceed_v what_o clear_a or_o great_a argument_n can_v there_o be_v against_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n
be_v he_o beside_o that_o which_o be_v before_o speak_v do_v but_o consider_v what_o the_o abbot_n joachim_n long_v sithence_o tell_v king_n richard_n the_o first_o 5._o king_n of_o england_n namely_o that_o antichrist_n be_v then_o already_o bear_v and_o have_v his_o seat_n at_o rome_n and_o be_v to_o be_v advance_v in_o that_o apostolical_a sea_n and_o he_o further_o say_v non_fw-la nulli_fw-la sub_fw-la specie_fw-la sedis_fw-la dei_fw-la id_fw-la est●_n universalis_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la facti_fw-la sunt_fw-la sed●s_fw-la bestiae_fw-la quae_fw-la est_fw-la regnum_fw-la antichristi_fw-la regnantis_fw-la ubique_fw-la in_o membris_fw-la suis_fw-la etc._n etc._n sundry_a say_v he_o under_o pretence_n of_o god_n seat_n that_o be_v of_o the_o universal_a church_n be_v become_v the_o seat_n of_o the_o beast_n which_o be_v the_o kingdom_n of_o antichrist_n reign_v every_o where_o in_o his_o member_n consist_v as_o he_o there_o further_o say_v in_o the_o clergy_n man_n &_o in_o the_o monk_n and_o monastery_n again_o he_o say_v that_o rome_n est_fw-la in_o spiritu_fw-la babylon_n rome_n be_v the_o spiritual_a babylon_n and_o again_o he_o say_v negotiatores_fw-la terrae_fw-la sunt_fw-la ipsi_fw-la sacerdotes_fw-la qui_fw-la vendunt_fw-la orationes_fw-la &_o missas_fw-la pro_fw-la denarijs_fw-la facientes_fw-la domum_fw-la orationis_fw-la apothecam_fw-la negotiationis_fw-la the_o merchant_n of_o the_o earth_n be_v the_o priest_n themselves_o who_o sell_v prayer_n and_o mass_n for_o money_n make_v the_o house_n of_o prayer_n a_o shop_n of_o merchandise_n yea_o sundry_a both_o prince_n and_o bishop_n 7._o of_o germany_n long_o ago_o have_v affirm_v and_o publish_v the_o pope_n to_o be_v antichrist_n as_o appear_v in_o aventinus_n but_o i_o leave_v this_o to_o be_v as_o i_o say_v more_o full_o handle_v afterward_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n catholic_n if_o any_o will_v know_v who_o be_v the_o right_a catholic_n as_o papist_n very_o bold_o but_o very_o unjust_o take_v upon_o they_o that_o title_n let_v he_o consider_v these_o two_o sentence_n of_o vincentius_n and_o confer_v and_o join_v they_o together_o the_o first_o be_v this_o id_fw-la teneamus_fw-la quod_fw-la vbiqve_fw-la quod_fw-la semper_fw-la 3._o quod_fw-la ab_fw-la omnibus_fw-la creditum_fw-la hoc_fw-la est_fw-la enim_fw-la verè_fw-la proprieque_fw-la catholicum_fw-la let_v we_o uphold_v that_o which_o have_v be_v believe_v every_o where_o and_o at_o all_o time_n &_o of_o all_o person_n for_o this_o be_v right_o and_o proper_o catholic_a the_o second_o be_v this_o where_o he_o say_v ille_fw-la est_fw-la verus_fw-la &_o germanus_n catholicus_n 25_o qui_fw-la quidquid_fw-la universaliter_fw-la antiqvitus_n ecclesiam_fw-la catholicam_fw-la tenuisse_fw-la cognoverit_fw-la id_fw-la solum_fw-la sibi_fw-la tenendum_fw-la creder_fw-mi dumque_fw-la decernit_fw-la he_o be_v the_o true_a and_o right_a catholic_a who_o judge_v that_o he_o be_v to_o hold_v &_o believe_v only_o that_o which_o he_o know_v the_o catholic_a church_n to_o have_v former_o hold_v universal_o in_o the_o old_a time_n this_o vincentius_n live_v above_o 1200._o year_n sithence_o so_o that_o this_o antiquitùs_fw-la this_o old_a time_n whereto_o he_o refer_v every_o man_n that_o will_v be_v a_o right_a catholic_a can_v be_v intend_v the_o age_n and_o time_n wherein_o himself_o live_v much_o less_o can_v it_o he_o suppose_v any_o of_o those_o many_o hundred_o year_n that_o come_v after_o he_o and_o be_v sithence_o his_o time_n go_v and_o pass_v but_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v intend_v of_o a_o old_a time_n pass_v long_o before_o the_o time_n wherein_o he_o live_v and_o write_v these_o thing_n which_o old_a time_n therefore_o which_o he_o so_o call_v what_o can_v it_o be_v but_o the_o primitive_a and_o apostolic_a time_n if_o then_o you_o will_v prove_v yourselves_o to_o be_v catholic_n and_o your_o church_n to_o be_v the_o catholic_a church_n by_o this_o rule_n and_o definition_n of_o catholic_n out_o of_o vincentius_n then_o must_v you_o not_o take_v your_o pattern_n and_o proof_n from_o that_o council_n of_o trent_n nor_o from_o the_o late_a council_n of_o constance_n nor_o any_o of_o the_o time_n after_o vincentius_n but_o you_o must_v transcend_v and_o go_v to_o the_o time_n that_o be_v in_o the_o old_a time_n long_o before_o the_o day_n of_o this_o vincentius_n even_o to_o the_o primitive_a and_o apostolic_a time_n which_o be_v indeed_o the_o best_a and_o pure_a time_n and_o from_o thence_o must_v you_o take_v the_o pattern_n of_o your_o church_n and_o religion_n for_o that_o which_o always_o former_o and_o every_o where_o and_o of_o all_o christian_n in_o that_o old_a time_n be_v hold_v and_o believe_v be_v the_o thing_n that_o he_o account_v and_o define_v to_o be_v catholic_a and_o such_o to_o be_v catholic_n which_o hold_v and_o believe_v only_o so_o much_o and_o no_o more_o which_o faith_n doctrine_n and_o religion_n of_o those_o old_a primitive_a and_o apostolic_a time_n be_v at_o first_o deliver_v by_o word_n of_o mouth_n by_o the_o apostle_n but_o be_v afterward_o as_o irenaeus_n have_v before_o inform_v we_o commit_v to_o write_v 1._o that_o so_o it_o may_v be_v for_o ever_o that_o the_o foundation_n and_o pillar_n of_o our_o faith_n yea_o this_o even_o vincentius_n also_o himself_o teach_v 41._o say_v scripturarum_fw-la canon_n sufficit_fw-la ad_fw-la omne_fw-la satis_fw-la superque_fw-la the_o canon_n of_o the_o scripture_n do_v suffice_v for_o all_o matter_n sufficient_o and_o more_o than_o sufficient_o that_o be_v abundant_o and_o overflowing_o by_o this_o rule_n then_o and_o definition_n of_o a_o catholic_a give_v so_o long_o ago_o by_o vincentius_n it_o be_v evident_a that_o not_o you_o but_o we_o be_v to_o be_v hold_v for_o the_o right_n and_o true_a catholic_n inasmuch_o as_o not_o you_o but_o we_o do_v believe_v and_o hold_v that_o faith_n doctrine_n and_o religion_n which_o those_o old_a and_o first_o christian_n universal_o hold_v in_o those_o ancient_a primitive_a and_o apostolic_a time_n and_o which_o be_v afterward_o write_v and_o be_v omnisufficient_o contain_v in_o that_o write_a word_n of_o god_n the_o sacred_a and_o canonical_a scripture_n yea_o that_o and_o only_o that_o we_o hold_v and_o believe_v as_o vincentius_n say_v right_a and_o true_a catholic_n ought_v to_o do_v and_o so_o do_v not_o you_o therefore_o whether_o you_o or_o we_o be_v the_o right_a catholics_n be_v a_o very_a easy_a and_o apparent_a matter_n to_o be_v decide_v aufer_fw-la haereticis_fw-la carnis_fw-la quae_fw-la cum_fw-la ethnicis_fw-la sapiunt_fw-la ut_fw-la de_fw-fr scripture_n solis_fw-la quaestiones_fw-la svas_fw-la sistant_fw-la &_o stare_v non_fw-la poterunt_fw-la take_v from_o the_o heretic_n say_v tertullian_n those_o thing_n wherein_o they_o savour_v of_o heathen_a wisdom_n so_o as_o that_o they_o bring_v their_o controversy_n to_o be_v decide_v only_o by_o the_o scripture_n and_o they_o be_v not_o able_a to_o stand_v in_o which_o word_n man_n that_o will_v not_o suffer_v their_o controversy_n to_o be_v decide_v only_o by_o the_o scripture_n may_v see_v themselves_o range_v within_o the_o compass_n of_o heretic_n and_o so_o term_v and_o entitle_v by_o he_o so_o far_o be_v they_o off_o from_o be_v the_o right_a and_o true_a catholic_n and_o yet_o papist_n have_v i_o grant_v for_o some_o of_o their_o error_n a_o kind_n of_o antiquity_n but_o it_o be_v a_o antiquity_n of_o a_o late_a date_n and_o it_o be_v not_o that_o most_o ancient_a antiquity_n which_o vincentius_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n direct_v you_o unto_o and_o which_o shall_v be_v in_o request_n for_o that_o be_v the_o true_a whatsoever_o be_v the_o first_o and_o that_o which_o be_v late_a or_o praxeam_fw-la come_v in_o after_o the_o first_o be_v the_o adulterate_a or_o corrupt_a as_o tertullian_n again_o express_o affirm_v yea_o he_o say_v further_a hoc_fw-la mihi_fw-la proficit_fw-la antiquitas_fw-la praestructae_fw-la divinae_fw-la literaturae_fw-la herein_o do_v antiquity_n avail_v i_o fine_a if_o it_o be_v build_v upon_o the_o divine_a scripture_n wherefore_o if_o you_o will_v be_v good_a and_o right_n catholic_n you_o must_v go_v and_o take_v the_o pattern_n and_o precedent_n of_o your_o faith_n and_o religion_n from_o those_o most_o ancient_a primitive_a and_o apostolic_a time_n as_o we_o do_v because_o as_o eusebius_n also_o out_o of_o egesippus_fw-la note_v the_o church_n so_o long_o as_o the_o apostle_n live_v 32._o remain_v a_o pure_a virgin_n for_o that_o if_o any_o go_v about_o to_o corrupt_v the_o holy_a rule_n which_o be_v preach_v they_o do_v it_o in_o the_o dark_a and_o as_o it_o be_v underneath_o the_o earth_n but_o after_o the_o death_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o that_o generation_n be_v past_a which_o god_n vouchsafe_v to_o hear_v the_o divine_a wisdom_n with_o their_o own_o ear_n the_o place_n of_o wicked_a error_n say_v he_o begin_v to_o come_v into_o the_o church_n for_o which_o purpose_n &_o to_o show_v that_o corruption_n grow_v in_o those_o after_o &_o succeed_a time_n clemens_n also_o allege_v the_o proverb_n
that_o unless_o you_o join_v verity_n and_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n religion_n with_o it_o detest_v which_o be_v not_o in_o the_o popish_a church_n it_o be_v no_o better_a than_o a_o wicked_a and_o plain_a conspiracy_n against_o the_o truth_n which_o kind_n of_o unity_n be_v among_o they_o be_v indeed_o a_o mark_n not_o of_o the_o true_a but_o of_o the_o false_a err_a and_o antichristian_a church_n for_o so_o be_v it_o according_o record_v of_o those_o that_o follow_v the_o beast_n 17.17_o that_o they_o be_v of_o one_o mind_n or_o of_o one_o consent_n 4_o and_o as_o for_o the_o succession_n you_o talk_v so_o much_o of_o that_o succession_n in_o place_n to_o so_o many_o good_a bishop_n of_o rome_n which_o be_v orthodox_n and_o of_o the_o right_a religion_n can_v no_o way_n serve_v to_o justify_v and_o defend_v those_o degenerate_a and_o apostatical_a bishop_n of_o rome_n which_o have_v sithence_o that_o time_n for_o the_o space_n of_o many_o hundred_o year_n succeed_v no_o more_o than_o the_o succession_n of_o many_o wicked_a and_o idolatrous_a king_n in_o a_o kingdom_n unto_o divers_a godly_a virtuous_a &_o right_o religious_a king_n which_o be_v their_o predecessor_n be_v able_a to_o justify_v and_o defend_v those_o ungodly_a and_o degenerate_a successor_n those_o high_a priest_n which_o conspire_v and_o consent_v to_o put_v christ_n to_o death_n be_v never_o the_o less_o wicked_a nor_o any_o jot_n the_o more_o to_o be_v commend_v or_o allow_v because_o they_o succeed_v diverse_a godly_a priest_n which_o be_v their_o predecessor_n the_o virtue_n then_o and_o right_a religion_n of_o any_o predecessor_n can_v no_o way_n serve_v to_o countenance_n and_o defend_v the_o vice_n and_o false_a religion_n of_o the_o successor_n non_fw-la locus_fw-la sanctificat_fw-la hominem_fw-la nec_fw-la cathedra_fw-la facit_fw-la sacerdotem_fw-la the_o place_n sanctify_v not_o the_o man_n 40._o nor_o do_v the_o chair_n make_v the_o priest_n say_v chrysostome_n neque_fw-la sanctorum_fw-la silij_fw-la existimandi_fw-la sunt_fw-la quicunque_fw-la tenent_fw-la loca_fw-la sanctorum_fw-la sed_fw-la qui_fw-la exercent_fw-la opera_fw-la eorum_fw-la neither_o be_v they_o to_o be_v esteem_v the_o child_n of_o the_o saint_n 40._o whosoever_o hold_v the_o place_n of_o the_o saint_n but_o they_o which_o exercise_n their_o work_n say_v hierome_n qui_fw-la praesunt_fw-la ecclesijs_fw-la non_fw-la ex_fw-la loci_fw-la aut_fw-la generis_fw-la dignitate_fw-la sed_fw-la morum_fw-la nobilitate_fw-la non_fw-la ex_fw-la urbium_fw-la claritate_fw-la sed_fw-la fidei_fw-la puritate_fw-la debent_fw-la innotescere_fw-la they_o which_o be_v ruler_n of_o the_o church_n qui._n aught_o to_o be_v know_v not_o by_o the_o dignity_n of_o their_o place_n or_o ancestor_n but_o by_o the_o nobleness_n of_o their_o manner_n not_o by_o the_o famousness_n of_o their_o city_n but_o by_o the_o purity_n of_o their_o faith_n say_v gregory_n albeit_o therefore_o the_o pope_n otherwise_o call_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n succee_v in_o place_n to_o many_o godly_a and_o virtuous_a bishop_n that_o be_v his_o predecessor_n in_o former_a and_o ancient_a time_n yet_o what_o do_v all_o this_o make_v for_o he_o except_o he_o be_v like_a unto_o they_o and_o do_v succeed_v they_o in_o verity_n piety_n humility_n right_a faith_n and_o true_a religion_n aswell_o as_o in_o place_n the_o local_a succession_n without_o the_o other_o be_v nothing_o worth_a but_o serve_v rather_o to_o shame_v reprove_v and_o condemn_v the_o successor_n than_o any_o way_n to_o commend_v or_o allow_v of_o they_o when_o they_o be_v so_o exceed_o degenerate_a and_o unlike_a to_o those_o their_o good_a and_o godly_a predecessor_n 5_o and_o here_o they_o be_v wont_n to_o allege_v that_o peter_n be_v bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o that_o the_o pope_n be_v his_o successor_n but_o first_o it_o be_v not_o true_a that_o peter_n be_v bishop_n of_o rome_n in_o that_o sense_n they_o speak_v of_o that_o be_v to_o say_v he_o be_v not_o tie_v limit_v and_o restrain_v to_o that_o city_n of_o rome_n as_o to_o his_o particular_a diocese_n or_o province_n as_o bishop_n in_o these_o day_n be_v for_o it_o be_v clear_a that_o s._n peter_n be_v etc._n by_o his_o proper_a office_n and_o function_n one_o of_o the_o apostle_n of_o christ_n who_o by_o their_o office_n of_o apostleship_n be_v not_o restrain_v to_o any_o particular_a place_n as_o a_o bishop_n be_v to_o his_o diocese_n or_o province_n but_o be_v permit_v to_o go_v into_o any_o part_n of_o the_o world_n and_o to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n as_o the_o very_a commission_n give_v unto_o they_o from_o christ_n jesus_n himself_o 16.15_o do_v plain_o declare_v again_o 20_o it_o be_v well_o know_v that_o ancient_a writer_n do_v also_o call_v s._n paul_n bishop_n of_o rome_n as_o well_o as_o s._n peter_n and_o therefore_o peter_n be_v in_o no_o other_o sense_n to_o be_v account_v bishop_n of_o rome_n then_o s._n paul_n be_v yea_o s._n ambrose_n call_v all_o the_o apostle_n episcopos_fw-la that_o be_v bishop_n and_o judas_n the_o apostle_n 4._o be_v also_o say_v in_o the_o very_a scripture_n itself_o to_o have_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d episcopatum_n 1.20_o that_o be_v a_o bishopric_n you_o see_v then_o that_o whosoever_o either_o in_o the_o scripture_n or_o in_o the_o ancient_a father_n be_v say_v to_o be_v a_o bishop_n be_v not_o by_o and_o by_o to_o be_v suppose_v word_n a_o bishop_n restrain_v to_o a_o particular_a place_n as_o a_o bishop_n of_o a_o diocese_n or_o province_n be_v for_o this_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o greek_a and_o episcopus_fw-la in_o latin_a common_o english_v a_o bishop_n signify_v in_o the_o original_n nothing_o else_o but_o a_o overseer_n or_o one_o that_o have_v any_o charge_n to_o look_v to_o in_o which_o ample_a and_o general_a signification_n it_o be_v right_o attribute_v to_o any_o of_o the_o apostle_n whosoever_o and_o consequent_o well_o might_n s._n peter_n though_o he_o be_v by_o his_o proper_a office_n and_o function_n a_o apostle_n be_v call_v by_o some_o of_o the_o ancient_a father_n a_o bishop_n in_o respect_n of_o that_o his_o apostolical_a charge_n and_o ministry_n which_o he_o perform_v but_o thereupon_o to_o infer_v that_o he_o be_v bishop_n of_o rome_n in_o this_o sense_n namely_o as_o a_o bishop_n affix_v and_o restrain_v to_o that_o place_n as_o to_o his_o proper_a and_o peculiar_a diocese_n or_o province_n and_o as_o though_o he_o may_v not_o go_v from_o thence_o into_o other_o part_n of_o the_o world_n to_o perform_v the_o office_n of_o a_o apostle_n aswell_o as_o thither_o be_v beside_o the_o inconsequencie_n of_o it_o very_o absurd_a whatsoever_o stay_n or_o abode_n then_o either_o s._n peter_n or_o s._n paul_n make_v at_o rome_n or_o elsewhere_o or_o wheresoever_o they_o live_v or_o die_v it_o be_v manifest_a that_o they_o be_v apostle_n and_o execute_v every_o where_o that_o their_o apostolical_a office_n and_o function_n and_o live_v and_o die_v apostle_n and_o therefore_o be_v not_o in_o proper_a and_o strict_a appellation_n to_o be_v term_v and_o deem_v bishop_n of_o diocese_n and_o province_n for_o neither_o can_v he_o that_o be_v by_o christ_n his_o lord_n and_o master_n design_v and_o appoint_v to_o be_v a_o apostle_n lawful_o forsake_v that_o his_o office_n and_o call_n of_o apostleship_n and_o at_o his_o own_o or_o other_o man_n pleasure_n become_v of_o another_o and_o that_o a_o inferior_a degree_n and_o calling_n as_o namely_o to_o be_v a_o bishop_n tie_v &_o restrain_v to_o a_o diocese_n or_o province_n but_o admit_v peter_n have_v be_v bishop_n of_o rome_n in_o that_o strict_a signification_n of_o the_o word_n yet_o than_o second_o be_v he_o far_o from_o be_v bishop_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n for_o to_o be_v bishop_n of_o one_o city_n in_o the_o world_n or_o of_o one_o particular_a diocese_n or_o province_n in_o the_o world_n be_v not_o all_o one_o with_o this_o namely_o to_o be_v bishop_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n or_o to_o be_v universal_a bishop_n over_o all_o the_o church_n in_o the_o world_n for_o episcopus_fw-la orbis_fw-la and_o vrbis_fw-la do_v far_o differ_v yea_o three_o let_v we_o admit_v if_o you_o will_v that_o s._n peter_n be_v bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o that_o by_o be_v bishop_n of_o rome_n he_o be_v also_o bishop_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n or_o of_o all_o the_o christian_a church_n in_o the_o whole_a world_n which_o nevertheless_o be_v very_o absurd_a to_o be_v admit_v yet_o what_o will_v all_o this_o advantage_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n that_o now_o be_v or_o any_o other_o of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n that_o have_v be_v in_o these_o late_a time_n for_o the_o space_n of_o diverse_a hundred_o year_n that_o they_o be_v successor_n to_o he_o in_o place_n who_o they_o be_v nothing_o like_o unto_o in_o condition_n and_o virtue_n humility_n faith_n and_o religion_n for_o how_o unlike_o the_o pope_n be_v to_o s._n peter_n judge_v
to_o be_v a_o high_a priest_n 10.21_o only_o to_o the_o house_n of_o god_n 7_o but_o against_o this_o be_v object_v that_o of_o s._n john_n where_o he_o say_v thus_o 1.29_o of_o christ_n behold_v the_o lamb_n of_o god_n which_o take_v away_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o world_n howbeit_o you_o be_v to_o understand_v that_o the_o word_n world_n as_o it_o be_v sometime_o take_v 1.2_o for_o the_o reprobate_n in_o the_o world_n as_o in_o that_o speech_n of_o christ_n before_o go_v where_o he_o say_v i_o pray_v not_o for_o the_o world_n and_o in_o other_o place_n likewise_o so_o it_o be_v sometime_o also_o take_v in_o the_o scripture_n to_o signify_v god_n elect_v in_o the_o world_n as_o for_o example_n in_o the_o gospel_n according_a to_o s._n john_n it_o be_v say_v thus_o god_n so_o love_v the_o world_n namely_o the_o gentile_n as_o well_o as_o the_o jew_n that_o he_o give_v his_o only_a beget_v son_n that_o whosoever_o whether_o jew_n or_o gentile_a believe_v in_o he_o shall_v not_o perish_v but_o have_v everlasting_a life_n for_o god_n send_v not_o his_o son_n into_o the_o world_n that_o he_o shall_v condemn_v the_o world_n but_o that_o the_o world_n through_o he_o shall_v be_v save_v here_o by_o the_o world_n which_o be_v to_o be_v save_v can_v be_v understand_v any_o reprobate_n but_o god_n elect_v only_o for_o they_o only_o be_v those_o that_o be_v to_o be_v save_v through_o he_o for_o as_o for_o such_o as_o be_v reprobate_n all_o man_n know_v that_o they_o be_v to_o be_v damn_v and_o not_o to_o be_v save_v and_o therefore_o also_o do_v s._n augustine_n so_o expound_v that_o place_n again_o s._n paul_n say_v that_o god_n be_v in_o christ_n reconcile_n the_o world_n unto_o he_o not_o impute_v their_o sin_n unto_o they_o and_o have_v commit_v unto_o we_o the_o word_n of_o reconciliation_n where_o likewise_o by_o this_o word_n world_n be_v mean_v only_a god_n elect_v in_o the_o world_n inasmuch_o as_o they_o only_o be_v those_o bless_a one_o which_o be_v reconcile_v unto_o god_n &_o which_o have_v not_o their_o sin_n impute_v to_o they_o for_o as_o for_o the_o reprobate_n they_o be_v the_o accurse_a one_o and_o be_v never_o reconcile_v unto_o god_n but_o have_v their_o sin_n impute_v unto_o they_o and_o charge_v upon_o they_o and_o for_o which_o therefore_o they_o be_v condemn_v in_o the_o end_n to_o everlasting_a torment_n and_o so_o do_v s._n augustine_n expound_v that_o place_n also_o again_o s._n john_n say_v thus_o hereby_o know_v we_o that_o we_o dwell_v in_o he_o and_o he_o in_o we_o because_o he_o have_v give_v we_o of_o his_o spirit_n and_o we_o have_v see_v and_o do_v testify_v that_o the_o father_n send_v the_o son_n to_o be_v the_o saviour_n of_o the_o world_n here_o likewise_o by_o the_o world_n that_o be_v to_o be_v save_v can_v be_v understand_v reprobate_n but_o god_n elect_v only_o because_o to_o these_o only_a be_v christ_n a_o saviour_n and_o to_o these_o only_a do_v salvation_n belong_v and_o so_o again_o s._n john_n say_v that_o christ_n be_v the_o reconciliation_n for_o our_o sin_n and_o not_o for_o our_o sin_n only_o but_o for_o the_o sin_n also_o of_o the_o whole_a world_n that_o be_v not_o only_o for_o the_o sin_n of_o god_n people_n which_o then_o live_v in_o the_o day_n of_o s_o john_n whereof_o himself_o be_v one_o but_o for_o the_o sin_n of_o all_o god_n elect_v wheresoever_o or_o whensoever_o live_v from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n to_o the_o end_n thereof_o and_o so_o do_v s._n augustine_n again_o expound_v that_o place_n likewise_o 9.15.16_o and_o in_o this_o sense_n it_o be_v that_o the_o word_n world_n be_v use_v by_o s._n john_n in_o the_o place_n before_o object_v where_o he_o say_v that_o christ_n be_v the_o lamb_n of_o god_n that_o take_v away_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o world_n that_o be_v to_o say_v of_o all_o god_n elect_v in_o the_o world_n at_o what_o time_n or_o age_n soever_o they_o live_v from_o the_o begin_n of_o it_o to_o the_o end_n neither_o in_o this_o case_n can_v the_o reprobate_n complain_v of_o any_o injustice_n offer_v they_o from_o god_n because_o mankind_n be_v fall_v from_o that_o integrity_n wherein_o he_o be_v create_v it_o be_v in_o god_n power_n and_o pleasure_n to_o provide_v a_o surety_n and_o saviour_n for_o who_o he_o will_v and_o to_o show_v mercy_n to_o who_o he_o will_v and_o to_o withhold_v his_o mercy_n also_o from_o who_o he_o will_v as_o likewise_o if_o divers_a have_v commit_v treason_n or_o rebellion_n in_o a_o kingdom_n against_o their_o king_n it_o be_v in_o the_o power_n of_o the_o king_n to_o show_v mercy_n and_o to_o give_v a_o pardon_n to_o who_o he_o will_v and_o to_o withhold_v his_o mercy_n and_o pardon_n from_o such_o as_o he_o please_v and_o to_o leave_v they_o in_o their_o offence_n unto_o condemnation_n and_o to_o be_v execute_v 8_o now_o then_o the_o former_a point_n be_v clear_v let_v i_o return_v and_o come_v to_o answer_v more_o succinct_o to_o that_o text_n before_o allege_a where_o s._n paul_n say_v who_o god_n foreknow_v they_o he_o predestinate_v etc._n etc._n 8.29.30_o first_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o he_o with_o approbation_n foreknow_v the_o elect_a in_o christ_n jesus_n 4._o their_o appoint_a saviour_n but_o the_o reprobate_n he_o never_o know_v in_o that_o manner_n but_o as_o be_v extra_fw-la christum_fw-la out_o of_o christ_n and_o consequent_o as_o they_o be_v in_o their_o transgression_n by_o and_o after_o the_o fall_n of_o adam_n wherein_o they_o be_v liable_a to_o condemnation_n have_v no_o surety_n or_o saviour_n for_o they_o prepare_v or_o appoint_v second_o when_o he_o there_o teach_v that_o man_n be_v predestinate_v according_a to_o god_n foreknowledge_n the_o same_o s._n paul_n to_o declare_v and_o expound_v those_o word_n say_v in_o another_o place_n that_o they_o be_v predestinate_a according_a to_o his_o purpose_n 1.11_o by_o confer_v of_o which_o place_n together_o you_o may_v easy_o perceive_v that_o by_o god_n foreknowledge_n his_o purpose_v to_o predestine_v those_o who_o he_o do_v predestinate_a be_v understand_v for_o say_v he_o in_o this_o place_n to_o the_o ephesian_n man_n be_v predestinate_a according_a to_o the_o purpose_n of_o he_o that_o do_v all_o thing_n by_o the_o counsel_n of_o his_o own_o will_n 11._o and_o again_o he_o there_o say_v that_o they_o be_v predestinate_a according_a to_o the_o good_a pleasure_n of_o his_o own_o will._n 1.5_o god_n foreknow_v of_o they_o then_o in_o this_o case_n appear_v to_o be_v his_o fore-purposing_a to_o approve_v of_o they_o and_o to_o account_v of_o they_o as_o of_o his_o elect_n and_o predestinate_a people_n to_o eternal_a salvation_n which_o may_v yet_o further_o appear_v by_o the_o contrary_a namely_o by_o the_o reprobate_n who_o he_o never_o so_o foreknow_v or_o know_v at_o all_o with_o that_o approbation_n and_o therefore_o will_v he_o say_v unto_o they_o in_o the_o last_o day_n nunquam_fw-la novi_fw-la vos_fw-la etc._n etc._n i_o never_o know_v you_o 25.12_o sicut_fw-la enim_fw-la quos_fw-la reprobat_fw-la dominus_fw-la nescire_fw-la dicitur_fw-la ita_fw-la quos_fw-la ad_fw-la salutem_fw-la praedestinavit_fw-la &_o praeordinat_fw-la cognoscere_fw-la rectè_fw-la dicitur_fw-la for_o as_o the_o lord_n who_o he_o reprobate_v be_v say_v not_o to_o know_v so_o those_o 6._o who_o he_o have_v predestinate_v and_o preordain_v to_o salvation_n he_o be_v right_o say_v to_o know_v say_v s._n cyril_n and_o so_o say_v thomas_n aquinas_n that_o 8._o quos_fw-la praescivit_fw-la scientia_fw-la approbationis_fw-la hos_fw-la &_o praedestinavit_fw-la who_o god_n foreknewe_a with_o his_o knowledge_n of_o approbation_n triph●n_n they_o he_o do_v also_o predestinate_a to_o come_v then_o to_o the_o point_n sunt_fw-la praesciti_fw-la ut_fw-la crederent_fw-la man_n be_v foreknow_v that_o they_o may_v believe_v say_v justin_n martyr_n non_fw-la eliguntur_fw-la qui●_n credituri_fw-la sed_fw-la eliguntur_fw-la ut_fw-la credant_fw-la man_n be_v not_o elect_v 17._o because_o they_o do_v afterward_o believe_v but_o they_o be_v elect_v that_o they_o may_v believe_v say_v s._n augustine_n and_o so_o say_v s._n paul_n also_o express_o that_o they_o be_v predestinate_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o the_o adoption_n of_o son_n which_o adoption_n or_o be_v make_v the_o son_n of_o god_n 1.5_o be_v by_o faith_n in_o jesus_n christ_n as_o himself_o in_o another_o place_n direct_o witness_v 1.1.2_o and_o so_o s._n peter_n also_o say_v that_o man_n be_v elect_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d etc._n etc._n unto_o obedience_n and_o unto_o the_o sprinkle_n of_o the_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ._n again_o s._n paul_n have_v before_o tell_v we_o that_o god_n have_v choose_v or_o elect_v we_o in_o christ_n before_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o world_n that_o we_o shall_v be_v holy_a and_o without_o blame_n before_o he_o in_o
government_n of_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n by_o pope_n be_v not_o come_v to_o pass_v in_o the_o day_n of_o s._n john_n but_o come_v in_o afterward_o and_o for_o the_o better_a comfort_n of_o god_n people_n that_o shall_v be_v molest_v disquiet_v and_o persecute_v by_o this_o seven_o head_n that_o be_v by_o the_o government_n of_o rome_n by_o pope_n it_o be_v say_v that_o he_o shall_v continue_v but_o a_o short_a space_n for_o although_o the_o government_n of_o rome_n by_o pope_n be_v and_o have_v continue_v divers_a hundred_o year_n which_o may_v seem_v to_o flesh_n and_o blood_n and_o to_o a_o carnal_a and_o worldly_a understanding_n to_o be_v very_o long_o yet_o in_o god_n reckon_n and_o esteem_n it_o be_v but_o short_a and_o of_o little_a continuance_n 90.14_o inasmuch_o as_o a_o thousand_o year_n with_o god_n be_v but_o as_o one_o day_n as_o s._n peter_n and_o the_o psalmist_n do_v both_o witness_n as_o also_o they_o be_v say_v to_o be_v but_o short_a in_o respect_n of_o eternity_n which_o god_n child_n do_v chief_o respect_v and_o in_o comparison_n whereof_o they_o set_v light_a by_o and_o little_o esteem_v all_o worldly_a thing_n as_o for_o the_o ten_o horn_n they_o be_v also_o express_o expound_v in_o the_o text_n itself_o to_o be_v ten_o king_n 17._o which_o have_v former_o give_v the_o help_n and_o power_n of_o their_o kingdom_n unto_o the_o beast_n and_o in_o defence_n of_o the_o whore_n shall_v afterward_o dislike_v abhor_v and_o hate_v she_o make_v she_o desolate_a and_o naked_a and_o burn_v she_o with_o fire_n who_o these_o ten_o king_n be_v in_o particular_a the_o event_n will_v best_o declare_v when_o this_o prophecy_n in_o this_o point_n shall_v be_v actual_o accomplish_v in_o the_o mean_a time_n observe_v that_o this_o very_a beast_n with_o seven_o head_n and_o ten_o horn_n which_o s._n john_n see_v in_o vision_n be_v now_o at_o this_o time_n in_o this_o chapter_n of_o rev._n 17._o considerable_a as_o he_o be_v the_o eight_o head_n and_o one_o of_o the_o seven_o for_o so_o it_o be_v direct_o manifest_a by_o the_o very_a word_n of_o the_o text_n itself_o say_v thus_o to_o s._n john_n the_o beast_n that_o thou_o have_v see_v 17.11_o be_v and_o be_v not_o &c._n &c._n and_o the_o beast_n that_o be_v and_o be_v not_o head_n be_v the_o eight_o and_o be_v one_o of_o the_o seven_o you_o see_v then_o that_o this_o beast_n with_o seven_o head_n and_o ten_o horn_n be_v now_o at_o this_o time_n much_o waste_v in_o the_o number_n of_o his_o head_n they_o all_o be_v spend_v go_v and_o abolish_v except_o only_o this_o one_o which_o be_v the_o e●ght_n and_o one_o of_o the_o seven_o for_o the_o whole_a beast_n be_v here_o reckon_v and_o express_o affirm_v to_o be_v at_o this_o time_n only_o he_o which_o be_v this_o eight_o head_n let_v we_o then_o consider_v who_o be_v the_o eight_o head_n of_o the_o beast_n that_o be_v of_o the_o roman_a state_n or_o state_n of_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n the_o text_n itself_o tell_v we_o that_o it_o be_v one_o of_o the_o seven_o and_o indeed_o it_o be_v one_o of_o the_o seven_o and_o the_o very_a seven_o for._n pope_n who_o be_v the_o seven_o head_n whereby_o that_o city_n of_o rome_n now_o be_v and_o of_o long_a time_n have_v be_v govern_v be_v also_o the_o eight_o because_o the_o pope_n comprehend_v in_o himself_o a_o double_a princehood_n or_o sovereignty_n for_o he_o 〈◊〉_d as_o bellarmine_n and_o other_o papist_n affirm_v of_o he_o summus_n princeps_fw-la spiritualis_fw-la and_o summus_n princeps_fw-la temporalis_fw-la 1._o a_o sovereign_a spiritual_a prinee_n and_o a_o sovereign_n temporal_a prince_n and_o the_o one_o namely_o his_o temporal_a principality_n or_o sovereignty_n some_o of_o they_o say_v he_o have_v direct_o from_o christ_n and_o othersome_a of_o they_o as_o namely_o bellarmine_n and_o those_o that_o take_v part_n with_o he_o do_v hold_v that_o he_o have_v it_o not_o direct_o but_o indirect_o and_o in_o ordine_fw-la ad_fw-la spiritualia_fw-la as_o they_o speak_v that_o be_v 6._o so_o far_o forth_o as_o it_o be_v for_o the_o good_a of_o soul_n and_o for_o the_o advancement_n of_o a_o catholic_a cause_n but_o whether_o direct_o or_o indirect_o it_o be_v agree_v by_o they_o all_o that_o he_o have_v it_o and_o consequent_o pope_n in_o respect_n of_o this_o their_o double_a sovereignty_n appear_v to_o be_v both_o the_o seven_o and_o eight_o head_n of_o the_o beast_n by_o the_o power_n of_o which_o two_o sword_n which_o he_o have_v get_v in_o the_o high_a and_o supreme_a degree_n it_o be_v that_o he_o be_v the_o better_a able_a and_o very_o sufficient_o furnish_v to_o be_v as_o he_o be_v also_o call_v the_o bea●t_n that_o bear_v up_o or_o support_v that_o whore_n of_o babylon_n yea_o 3·7_n all_o those_o six_o head_n of_o rome_n namely_o king_n consul_n decemvir_n tribune_n dictator_n and_o emperor_n be_v go_v and_o pass_v for_o the_o emperor_n also_o have_v cease_v long_o since_o to_o have_v any_o headship_n or_o sovereign_a rule_n there_o what_o remain_v but_o that_o the_o pope_n who_o have_v succeed_v the_o emperor_n at_o rome_n and_o be_v the_o present_a head_n of_o it_o bear_v the_o sovereignty_n there_o be_v and_o must_v needs_o be_v the_o seven_o and_o therewithal_o the_o eight_o and_o last_o head_n of_o the_o beast_n all_o this_o while_n then_o i_o trust_v you_o perceive_v that_o see_v rome_n be_v here_o describe_v only_o as_o it_o be_v under_o the_o government_n of_o he_o that_o be_v the_o eight_o head_n therefore_o it_o can_v possible_o be_v intend_v of_o heathen_a rome_n for_o rome_n whilst_o it_o be_v heathen_a be_v under_o the_o government_n of_o the_o heathen_a emperor_n and_o far_o remote_a from_o the_o time_n of_o the_o government_n of_o it_o by_o this_o eight_o head_n yea_o see_v rome_n be_v here_o discover_v and_o describe_v as_o it_o be_v under_o the_o pope_n who_o be_v the_o seven_o and_o the_o eight_o and_o so_o the_o last_o head_n of_o that_o city_n it_o must_v needs_o be_v grant_v that_o not_o heathen_a but_o papal_a rome_n be_v there_o clearelie_o and_o undoubtedlie_o intend_v and_o it_o be_v there_o further_o say_v to_o be_v the_o beast_n 17.8_o that_o be_v and_o be_v not_o and_o yet_o be_v because_o whilst_o the_o emperor_n be_v head_n of_o rome_n the_o imperial_a and_o supreme_a authority_n be_v in_o the_o emperor_n but_o afterward_o the_o emperor_n cease_v to_o be_v head_n of_o rome_n or_o to_o have_v any_o sovereignty_n or_o supreamacie_n there_o and_o then_o it_o be_v not_o in_o they_o but_o in_o conclusion_n the_o pope_n become_v the_o head_n of_o rome_n exercise_v there_o the_o sovereignty_n &_o than_o it_o be_v in_o they_o and_o so_o continue_v and_o yet_o be_v so_o that_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o divers_a change_n and_o mutation_n that_o it_o have_v it_o be_v say_v to_o be_v the_o beast_n that_o be_v and_o be_v not_o and_o yet_o isabella_n fiftlie_o remember_v that_o it_o be_v confess_v by_o the_o adversary_n themselves_o etc._n that_o by_o babylon_n mention_v in_o the_o revelation_n the_o city_n of_o rome_n be_v understand_v whereupon_o must_v further_o be_v grant_v that_o it_o be_v that_o babylon_n that_o be_v that_o rome_n in_o who_o forehead_n be_v a_o name_n write_v a_o mystery_n etc._n etc._n which_o mystery_n s._n paul_n call_v a_o mystery_n of_o iniquity_n and_o it_o be_v so_o call_v because_o it_o shall_v hardly_o be_v discern_v to_o be_v iniquity_n inasmuch_o as_o it_o shall_v outward_o carry_v such_o a_o goodly_a face_n pretence_n and_o show_v of_o piety_n sanctity_n and_o christianity_n with_o it_o but_o the_o heathen_a city_n of_o rome_n have_v not_o this_o mystical_a hide_a and_o covert_a iniquity_n in_o it_o but_o profess_v open_a enmity_n and_o direct_a hostility_n against_o christ_n and_o christianity_n and_o therefore_o also_o not_o the_o heathen_a and_o infidel_n rome_n but_o the_o papal_a or_o popish_a rome_n be_v and_o must_v needs_o be_v there_o intend_v six_o the_o babylon_n that_o be_v the_o rome_n there_o speak_v of_o be_v say_v to_o have_v merchant_n that_o sell_v their_o ware_n and_o among_o the_o rest_n of_o their_o merchandize_n and_o ware_n there_o be_v express_v mention_v make_v not_o only_o of_o temporal_a commodity_n 〈◊〉_d &_o of_o the_o body_n of_o man_n but_o of_o spiritual_a also_o namely_o even_o of_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n that_o they_o also_o be_v there_o to_o be_v boght_v &_o sold._n for_o there_o it_o a_o plain_a &_o evident_a distinction_n in_o the_o text_n itself_o betweeen_n the_o body_n &_o soul_n of_o man_n and_o therefore_o they_o must_v not_o be_v confound_v or_o suppose_v all_o one_o now_o then_o i_o pray_v tell_v i_o do_v ever_o heathen_a rome_n use_v this_o trade_n of_o merchandize_v man_n soul_n or_o in_o what_o other_o rome_n
unto_o thou_o but_o my_o father_n which_o be_v in_o heaven_n and_o i_o say_v unto_o thou_o thou_o be_v peter_n and_o upon_o this_o rock_n will_v i_o build_v my_o church_n and_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v not_o overcome_v it_o and_o i_o will_v give_v unto_o thou_o the_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n and_o whatsoever_o thou_o shall_v bind_v on_o earth_n shall_v be_v bind_v in_o heaven_n and_o whatsoever_o thou_o shall_v loose_v on_o earth_n shall_v be_v loose_v in_o heaven_n howbeit_o first_o you_o must_v be_v put_v in_o mind_n that_o the_o confession_n which_o peter_n here_o make_v 68_o of_o christ_n to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o the_o live_a god_n be_v likewise_o the_o confession_n and_o acknowledgement_n of_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n mat._n aswell_o as_o of_o peter_n so_o that_o he_o for_o his_o part_n be_v therein_o but_o as_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o rest_n or_o like_o the_o foreman_n of_o a_o jury_n pronounce_v that_o verdict_n and_o confession_n for_o they_o all_o for_o which_o cause_n also_o the_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n and_o the_o power_n of_o bind_v and_o lose_v of_o sin_n be_v there_o promise_v to_o be_v give_v to_o peter_n not_o as_o to_o he_o alone_o but_o to_o he_o as_o bear_v and_o represent_v at_o that_o time_n the_o person_n of_o they_o all_o for_o that_o peter_n at_o that_o time_n represent_v the_o person_n of_o they_o all_o be_v manifest_a by_o these_o reason_n first_o the_o question_n be_v demand_v not_o of_o peter_n alone_o but_o of_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n aswell_o as_o of_o he_o for_o the_o word_n be_v not_o in_o the_o singular_a but_o in_o the_o plural_a number_n vos_fw-fr autem_fw-la quem_fw-la i_o esse_fw-la dicitis_fw-la but_o who_o do_v you_o say_v that_o i_o be_o and_o consequent_o the_o answer_n that_o be_v give_v must_v consonant_o thereunto_o be_v suppose_v to_o be_v the_o answer_n of_o they_o all_o for_o it_o be_v a_o very_a uncivil_a and_o unseemly_a part_n beside_o undutiful_a if_o the_o rest_n be_v demand_v and_o ask_v the_o question_n aswell_o as_o peter_n shall_v give_v no_o manner_n of_o answer_n to_o their_o lord_n and_o master_n demand_v it_o of_o they_o which_o they_o must_v needs_o be_v hold_v guilty_a of_o unless_o their_o answer_n be_v take_v to_o be_v include_v and_o comprehend_v in_o that_o answer_n of_o peter_n second_o when_o this_o promise_n make_v to_o s._n peter_n come_v to_o be_v perform_v it_o be_v perform_v to_o they_o all_o alike_o as_o you_o may_v see_v in_o that_o place_n of_o joh._n 20.22_o 23._o where_o that_o promise_n be_v perform_v and_o accomplish_v which_o also_o show_v that_o the_o promise_v make_v to_o s._n peter_n be_v not_o make_v as_o to_o he_o alone_o but_o to_o he_o as_o represent_v at_o that_o time_n the_o person_n of_o they_o all_o for_o the_o promise_n and_o the_o performance_n of_o that_o promise_n must_v of_o necessity_n have_v coherence_n and_o be_v make_v to_o agree_v together_o as_o most_o apt_o and_o right_o expound_v one_o a_o other_o and_o according_a hereunto_o do_v the_o ancient_a father_n likewise_o expound_v it_o origen_n say_v this_o say_n of_o christ_n to_o peter_n i_o will_v give_v unto_o thou_o the_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n be_v common_a also_o to_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n 1._o and_o the_o word_n that_o follow_v as_o speak_v to_o peter_n be_v also_o common_a to_o they_o all_o again_o he_o say_v shall_v we_o dare_v to_o say_v that_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v not_o overcome_v only_a peter_n and_o that_o the_o same_o gate_n shall_v prevail_v against_o all_o the_o other_o apostle_n and_o again_o he_o say_v if_o we_o speak●_n the_o same_o thing_n that_o peter_n speak_v we_o be_v become_v peter_n and_o unto_o we_o it_o shall_v be_v say_v thou_o be_v peter_n for_o he_o be_v a_o rock_n whosoever_o be_v the_o disciple_n of_o christ._n and_o again_o he_o say_v if_o thou_o think_v that_o the_o whole_a church_n be_v build_v only_o upon_o peter_n what_o will_v thou_o then_o say_v of_o john_n the_o son_n of_o thunder_n and_o of_o every_o of_o the_o apostle_n cyprian_n speak_v in_o like_a sort_n upon_o these_o word_n of_o christ_n to_o peter_n in_o the_o person_n of_o one_o man_n say_v he_o the_o lord_n do_v give_v the_o key_n to_o all_o the_o apostle_n to_o signify_v the_o unity_n of_o they_o all_o pr●lat_n for_o very_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v the_o same_o that_o peter_n be_v endue_v with_o equal_a fellowship_n both_o of_o honour_n and_o power_n but_o he_o do_v begin_v with_o unity_n that_o be_v to_o say_v with_o one_o that_o thereby_o it_o may_v be_v signify_v that_o there_o be_v but_o one_o church_n of_o christ._n in_o like_a sort_n do_v s._n augustine_n expound_v it_o say_v when_o they_o be_v all_o ask_v peter_n alone_o make_v the_o answer_n and_o it_o be_v say_v unto_o he_o 124._o i_o will_v give_v unto_o thou_o the_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n as_o though_o he_o alone_o have_v receive_v authority_n to_o bind_v and_o to_o loose_v whereas_o he_o have_v speak_v that_o for_o they_o all_o and_o receive_v this_o as_o represent_v or_o bear_v in_o himself_o the_o person_n of_o unity_n and_o again_o he_o say_v if_o there_o be_v not_o a_o mystery_n of_o the_o church_n in_o peter_n the_o lord_n will_v not_o have_v say_v i_o will_v give_v to_o thou_o the_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n 50._o for_o if_o this_o be_v say_v only_o to_o peter_n than_o the_o church_n have_v they_o not_o and_o if_o the_o church_n have_v they_o than_o when_o he_o receive_v the_o key_n he_o signify_v the_o whole_a church_n so_o likewise_o testify_v s._n hierome_n you_o will_v say_v say_v he_o that_o the_o church_n be_v build_v upon_o peter_n 1._o howbeit_o in_o another_o place_n the_o same_o thing_n be_v do_v upon_o all_o the_o apostle_n and_o all_o receive_v the_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n and_o the_o strength_n of_o the_o church_n be_v found_v equal_o upon_o they_o all_o beda_n do_v likewise_o so_o expound_v it_o say_v thus_o the_o power_n of_o bind_v and_o lose_v 16._o notwithstanding_o it_o seem_v to_o be_v give_v only_o to_o peter_n yet_o without_o all_o doubt_n we_o must_v understand_v that_o it_o be_v give_v also_o to_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n haymo_n do_v also_o so_o affirm_v this_o authority_n say_v he_o the_o lord_n give_v not_o only_o to_o peter_n paul_n but_o also_o to_o all_o the_o apostle_n because_o peter_n express_v the_o faith_n of_o all_o the_o apostle_n when_o he_o say_v thou_o be_v christ_n the_o son_n of_o the_o live_a god_n so_o that_o what_o the_o lord_n say_v to_o peter_n he_o say_v unto_o all_o his_o apostle_n as_o appear_v joh._n 20.23_o where_o he_o say_v thus_o unto_o they_o all_o alike_o who_o sin_n you_o remit_v they_o be_v remit_v unto_o they_o and_o who_o sin_n you_o retain_v they_o be_v retain_v wherefore_o the_o key_n whereby_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n be_v open_v and_o shut_v to_o sinner_n and_o the_o power_n of_o bind_v and_o lose_v sin_n appear_v to_o be_v no_o more_o special_o or_o principal_o give_v to_o peter_n then_o to_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n but_o they_o all_o receive_v that_o power_n &_o authority_n equal_o &_o alike_o and_o here_o withal_o you_o may_v perceive_v that_o the_o very_a person_n of_o peter_n be_v not_o the_o rock_n or_o foundation_n whereupon_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n be_v build_v for_o then_o upon_o the_o death_n of_o peter_n the_o church_n for_o want_v of_o a_o rock_n or_o foundation_n to_o uphold_v it_o will_v have_v come_v to_o ruin_v but_o it_o be_v christ_n jesus_n himself_o who_o peter_n there_o for_o himself_o &_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o rest_n confess_v that_o be_v the_o rock_n and_o foundation_n to_o support_v and_o uphold_v the_o church_n and_o whereupon_o it_o be_v build_v for_o so_o also_o do_v s._n paul_n expound_v and_o declare_v it_o 10.4_o say_v in_o precise_a term_n thus_o other_o foundation_n can_v no_o man_n lay_v then_o that_o which_o be_v lay_v already_o which_o be_v jesus_n christ_n where_o you_o see_v that_o he_o express_o affirm_v the_o church_n to_o have_v no_o other_o foundation_n but_o christ_n only_o and_o in_o another_o place_n he_o also_o call_v christ_n jesus_n the_o rock_n in_o express_a term_n for_o he_o say_v that_o rock_n be_v christ_n yea_o and_o christ_n himself_o say_v he_o that_o hear_v my_o word_n and_o do_v they_o be_v the_o wise_a man_n that_o build_v his_o house_n upon_o the_o rock_n 7.24_o what_o better_a expositor_n than_o these_o will_v you_o have_v to_o expound_v and_o declare_v these_o word_n by_o the_o rock_n then_o not_o peter_n but_o christ_n be_v to_o
and_o yet_o have_v his_o sin_n forgive_v he_o and_o therefore_o be_v bind_v to_o love_n christ_n more_o than_o the_o rest_n because_o more_o be_v forgive_v he_o christ_n thrice_o require_v of_o he_o 7.41.42.43.47_o to_o manifest_v and_o declare_v that_o his_o great_a love_n by_o so_o much_o the_o more_o diligenter_fw-la feed_v of_o his_o sheeepe_a for_o this_o be_v the_o very_a drift_n true_a scope_n and_o meaning_n of_o christ_n in_o that_o place_n as_o s._n cyrill_n do_v also_o declare_v in_o these_o word_n because_o peter_n say_v he_o be_v ennoble_v 46._o from_o christ_n himself_o with_o the_o name_n of_o the_o apostleship_n with_o other_o do_v thrice_o deny_v christ_n in_o the_o time_n of_o his_o passion_n now_o by_o right_n be_v require_v of_o he_o three_o confession_n of_o his_o love_n that_o three_o denial_n may_v be_v countervayl_v and_o recompense_v with_o a_o equal_a number_n of_o confessing_n etc._n etc._n christ_n ask_v of_o he_o whether_o he_o love_v he_o more_o than_o the_o rest_n do_v for_o he_o that_o have_v experience_n of_o the_o great_a clemency_n of_o the_o lord_n towards_o he_o aught_o of_o right_a to_o be_v affect_v with_o great_a love_n for_o although_o general_o all_o the_o disciple_n be_v strike_v with_o great_a fear_n when_o the_o lord_n be_v betray_v yet_o the_o fault_n of_o peter_n be_v great_a than_o of_o the_o rest_n who_o so_o deny_v christ_n in_o so_o short_a a_o time_n because_o therefore_o he_o obtain_v remission_n of_o sin_n by_o great_a clemency_n of_o the_o saviour_n great_a love_n of_o right_n be_v require_v of_o he_o for_o he_o to_o who_o more_o be_v forgive_v aught_o more_o to_o love_v joh._n s._n augustine_n also_o upon_o this_o text_n likewise_o infer_v say_v let_v the_o duty_n of_o love_n be_v to_o feed_v the_o lord_n flock_n and_o chrysostome_n likewise_o say_v ter_n interrogat_v etc._n etc._n christ_n ask_v thrice_o joh._n and_o he_o always_o command_v the_o same_o thing_n that_o he_o may_v show_v how_o great_a care_n he_o have_v of_o his_o sheep_n and_o that_o the_o feed_n of_o they_o be_v the_o great_a argument_n of_o love_n to_o the_o like_a effect_n speak_v other_o also_o of_o the_o ancient_a father_n declare_v that_o the_o speech_n of_o christ_n to_o peter_n touch_v the_o feed_n of_o his_o sheep_n belong_v not_o only_o to_o peter_n but_o to_o all_o bishop_n pastor_n and_o minister_n of_o the_o word_n also_o 23._o wherefore_o s._n basil_n say_v thus_o christ_n say_v unto_o peter_n love_v thou_o i_o feed_v my_o sheep_n and_o in_o like_a sort_n unto_o all_o pastor_n and_o doctor_n he_o give_v the_o same_o power_n a_o token_n whereof_o be_v this_o that_o they_o do_v all_o equal_o bind_v and_o loose_v aswell_o as_o peter_n in_o like_a sort_n speak_v again_o s._n augustine_n say_v the_o word_n of_o christ_n 30._o love_v thou_o i_o and_o feed_v my_o sheep_n when_o they_o be_v speak_v unto_o peter_n they_o be_v speak_v unto_o all_o and_o so_o witness_v s._n ambrose_n also_o 2._o say_v our_o lord_n say_v unto_o peter_n feed_v my_o sheep_n which_o sheep_n and_o flock_n not_o only_a peter_n then_o receive_v but_o he_o receive_v the_o same_o together_o with_o we_o and_o all_o we_o have_v receive_v the_o same_o together_o with_o he_o so_o that_o peter_n neither_o in_o respect_n of_o feed_v the_o flock_n of_o christ_n nor_o in_o any_o other_o respect_n can_v be_v show_v to_o have_v or_o to_o have_v exercise_v any_o imperious_a or_o princely_a primacy_n or_o monarchical_a superiority_n over_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n but_o be_v in_o respect_n of_o rule_n power_n and_o authority_n equal_a with_o the_o rest_n &_o the_o rest_n with_o he_o and_o this_o also_o further_o appear_v by_o the_o very_a commission_n itself_o if_o you_o look_v upon_o it_o which_o be_v give_v to_o they_o 16.15.16_o when_o they_o be_v send_v out_o into_o all_o the_o world_n for_o therein_o be_v no_o more_o principality_n power_n or_o authority_n give_v or_o appoint_v to_o the_o one_o then_o to_o the_o other_o but_o now_o here_o last_o observe_v withal_o 16.19_o that_o they_o be_v the_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n and_o not_o of_o earthly_a kingdom_n which_o christ_n have_v commit_v to_o his_o minister_n so_o that_o neither_o excommunication_n nor_o any_o other_o power_n of_o the_o key_n be_v it_o never_o so_o lawful_o or_o just_o administer_v or_o execute_v be_v of_o force_n to_o depose_v any_o man_n from_o a_o earthly_a kingdom_n though_o it_o be_v of_o force_n be_v right_o use_v to_o seclude_v a_o man_n from_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n if_o he_o repent_v not_o and_o therefore_o here_o i_o must_v crave_v leave_n to_o tell_v you_o that_o most_o wicked_o &_o intolerable_o have_v the_o pope_n of_o rome_n abuse_v excommunication_n and_o the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n whilst_o he_o have_v use_v they_o for_o the_o pull_n down_o of_o king_n and_o prince_n from_o their_o throne_n and_o thereupon_o have_v move_v subject_n to_o revolt_v from_o their_o sovereign_n &_o to_o rebel_v against_o they_o be_v not_o this_o sweet_a doctrine_n and_o a_o holy_a religion_n that_o upon_o no_o warrant_n at_o all_o yea_o contrary_a to_o the_o rule_n &_o commandment_n of_o god_n shall_v presume_v to_o persuade_v subject_n to_o rebel_v against_o their_o lawful_a sovereign_n because_o forsooth_o the_o pope_n have_v excommunicate_v they_o for_o consider_v well_o the_o matter_n first_o it_o appear_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v no_o minister_n at_o all_o of_o christ_n but_o the_o very_a grand_fw-fr antichrist_n as_o this_o book_n clear_o manifest_v and_o have_v therefore_o no_o authority_n from_o christ_n to_o excommunicate_v any_o christian_n at_o all_o much_o less_o to_o excommunicate_v christian_a king_n and_o prince_n but_o second_o if_o he_o have_v that_o authority_n &_o that_o prince_n be_v excommunicate_v by_o he_o yet_o be_v excommunication_n of_o no_o force_n be_v it_o never_o so_o right_o do_v or_o use_v to_o dissolve_v the_o duty_n and_o allegiance_n of_o any_o subject_n or_o to_o depose_v from_o earthly_a kingdom_n inasmuch_o as_o excommunication_n and_o the_o whole_a power_n of_o the_o key_n as_o be_v here_o apparent_a stretch_v only_o to_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n and_o not_o to_o earthly_a kingdom_n i_o know_v they_o allege_v that_o we_o be_v to_o account_v a_o excommunicate_a person_n as_o a_o publican_n or_o heathen_a 18.17_o what_o of_o this_o admit_v if_o you_o will_v that_o he_o be_v thereby_o become_v actual_o and_o in_o all_o respect_n a_o very_a heathen_a yet_o i_o pray_v tell_v i_o be_v not_o heathen_a king_n king_n aswell_o as_o those_o that_o be_v christian_a yea_o be_v they_o not_o manifest_o 2.13_o heathen_a king_n and_o prince_n who_o nevertheless_o s._n paul_n and_o s._n peter_n also_o command_v obedience_n and_o subjection_n to_o be_v yield_v unto_o be_v not_o all_o those_o heathen_a emperor_n likewise_o to_o who_o the_o first_o christian_n that_o live_v under_o their_o persecution_n be_v nevertheless_o obedient_a you_o see_v then_o that_o if_o it_o be_v so_o that_o excommunication_n do_v as_o it_o do_v not_o make_v a_o christian_n king_n to_o become_v a_o very_a heathen_a king_n in_o all_o point_n and_o respect_n yet_o still_o nevertheless_o he_o remain_v a_o king_n and_o consequent_o be_v still_o to_o be_v honour_v and_o obey_v as_o a_o king_n of_o all_o his_o subject_n they_o allege_v second_o that_o the_o familiar_n and_o wont_a companion_n of_o a_o man_n excommunicate_v be_v to_o withdraw_v their_o company_n from_o he_o to_o the_o end_n he_o may_v be_v ashamed_a of_o his_o sin_n 3.14_o and_o so_o be_v bring_v to_o repentance_n but_o do_v this_o infer_v that_o therefore_o subject_n may_v or_o aught_o to_o withdraw_v their_o obedience_n and_o allegiance_n from_o their_o king_n no_o such_o matter_n for_o subject_n can_v be_v term_v or_o hold_v for_o familiar_n or_o companion_n to_o those_o king_n and_o prince_n under_o who_o they_o be_v but_o the_o king_n and_o prince_n of_o other_o nation_n and_o such_o as_o be_v foreigner_n if_o any_o if_o the_o father_n be_v excommunicate_v though_o other_o withdraw_v their_o company_n from_o he_o to_o the_o end_n he_o may_v be_v ashamed_a of_o his_o sin_n commit_v yet_o may_v not_o his_o son_n that_o owe_v special_a duty_n to_o he_o as_o to_o his_o father_n therefore_o withdraw_v his_o duty_n and_o obedience_n for_o though_o excommunication_n make_v he_o as_o a_o heathen_a and_o a_o publican_n yet_o it_o make_v he_o not_o no_o father_n but_o he_o still_o remain_v a_o father_n as_o he_o be_v before_o and_o therefore_o of_o all_o his_o child_n be_v to_o be_v reverence_v honour_a and_o obey_v as_o a_o father_n so_o likewise_o if_o the_o husband_n be_v excommunicate_a and_o that_o other_o therefore_o be_v to_o withdraw_v themselves_o from_o he_o yet_o nevertheless_o he_o still_o
see_v that_o he_o here_o teach_v 1290_o day_n to_o be_v the_o time_n allot_v to_o antichrist_n &_o a_o part_n of_o this_o time_n namely_o 1260_o day_n he_o show_v that_o the_o two_o witness_n live_v together_o with_o antichrist_n and_o the_o residue_n of_o that_o time_n which_o be_v 30_o day_n more_o that_o be_v one_o month_n after_o the_o death_n of_o those_o witness_n he_o say_v that_o antichrist_n live_v if_o then_o those_o two_o witness_n do_v accompany_v antichrist_n that_o be_v come_v when_o he_o come_v and_o do_v prophesy_v 1260_o day_n that_o be_v just_a three_o year_n and_o a_o half_a before_o they_o die_v and_o that_o after_o their_o death_n antichrist_n still_o live_v and_o that_o by_o the_o space_n of_o a_o month_n how_o can_v it_o be_v shift_v but_o that_o antichrists_n reign_n must_v be_v grant_v to_o continue_v long_o than_o that_o time_n aforesaid_a of_o just_a three_o year_n and_o a_o half_a if_o you_o answer_v as_o one_o master_n christopherson_n in_o defence_n of_o bellarmine_n do_v that_o this_o last_o month_n be_v not_o to_o be_v account_v of_o because_o antichrist_n during_o that_o his_o last_o month_n reign_v not_o so_o strong_o and_o firm_o as_o he_o do_v before_o and_o that_o his_o kingdom_n be_v then_o weak_a and_o decline_a this_o hinder_v not_o but_o that_o his_o reign_n and_o kingdom_n do_v for_o all_o that_o still_o continue_v even_o during_o that_o month_n aswell_o as_o during_o any_o of_o those_o former_a month_n day_n or_o late_a time_n wherein_o he_o be_v in_o his_o declination_n for_o a_o man_n cease_v not_o to_o be_v a_o king_n because_o he_o at_o some_o time_n rule_v and_o reign_v more_o feeble_o and_o weak_o then_o at_o othersome_a time_n and_o therefore_o even_o this_o last_o month_n aswell_o as_o any_o of_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o late_a month_n or_o day_n be_v to_o be_v reckon_v &_o account_v part_n of_o antichrist_n his_o reign_n for_o else_o you_o may_v as_o well_o exclude_v the_o six_o month_n or_o at_o least_o some_o part_n of_o it_o or_o the_o last_o day_n of_o the_o six_o month_n as_o the_o seven_o month_n or_o the_o first_o day_n of_o the_o same_o seven_o month_n because_o in_o those_o day_n also_o antichrist_n be_v decline_v but_o what_o shall_v not_o the_o reign_n of_o antichrist_n or_o of_o any_o king_n whosoever_o be_v say_v and_o suppose_v to_o continue_v so_o long_o as_o he_o live_v while_o he_o be_v neither_o depose_v nor_o surrender_v nor_o yield_v up_o his_o kingdom_n to_o any_o other_o nor_o have_v do_v nor_o suffer_v to_o be_v do_v any_o act_n to_o the_o contrary_a yea_o bellarmine_n himself_o do_v express_o account_v this_o last_o month_n aswell_o as_o any_o of_o the_o former_a as_o a_o part_n of_o antichrist_n his_o reign_n use_v the_o very_a word_n and_o say_v that_o he_o be_v regnaturus_fw-la mille_fw-la ducentis_fw-la nonaginta_fw-la diebus_fw-la to_o reign_v 1290_o day_n here_o than_o you_o see_v by_o this_o incurable_a contradiction_n and_o repugnant_a doctrine_n of_o bellarmine_n and_o other_o papist_n that_o the_o long_o retain_v opinion_n of_o antichrist_n his_o reign_v just_a three_o year_n and_o a_o half_a be_v either_o utter_o uncertain_a or_o utter_o untrue_a and_o that_o you_o may_v yet_o better_o perceive_v the_o uncertainty_n 8.14.15_o or_o rather_o untruth_n of_o that_o opinion_n consider_v that_o the_o prophet_n daniel_n also_o mention_v 2300_o day_n which_o text_n &_o time_n 8._o diverse_a also_o of_o the_o ancient_a father_n as_o s._n hierome_n witness_v do_v apply_v unto_o antichrist_n which_o opinion_n of_o those_o ancient_a writer_n if_o a_o man_n shall_v hold_v then_o must_v antichrists_n reign_n be_v yet_o of_o much_o long_a continuance_n than_o either_o 1260_o day_n or_o then_o 1290_o day_n that_o be_v much_o long_o than_o either_o three_o year_n and_o six_o month_n or_o three_o year_n and_o seven_o month_n such_o uncertainty_n there_o be_v even_o in_o ancient_a father_n as_o well_o as_o in_o other_o writer_n when_o they_o go_v by_o conjecture_n or_o supposition_n without_o sufficient_a warrant_n of_o the_o divine_a scripture_n antichrist_n but_o bellarmine_n yet_o further_o proceed_v and_o say_v thus_o that_o the_o prophet_n daniel_n after_o he_o have_v say_v cap._n 12.11_o that_o antichrists_n kingdom_n shall_v endure_v 1290_o day_n add_v vers_fw-la 12._o bless_a be_v he_o which_o expect_v and_o come_v to_o 1335_o day_n that_o be_v to_o 45_o day_n after_o antichrists_n death_n for_o than_o will_v our_o lord_n come_v to_o judgement_n and_o render_v the_o crown_n of_o righteousness_n to_o the_o conqueror_n observe_v this_o well_o also_o for_o if_o this_o opinion_n of_o he_o concern_v antichrist_n be_v true_a namely_o that_o he_o shall_v reign_v just_a three_o year_n and_o a_o half_a and_o yet_o that_o he_o shall_v continue_v one_o month_n long_o consist_v of_o 30_o day_n to_o make_v up_o the_o full_a number_n of_o 1290_o day_n and_o that_o 45_o day_n after_o shall_v be_v the_o time_n of_o christ_n come_v to_o judgement_n and_o of_o eternal_a blessedness_n as_o he_o there_o teach_v who_o see_v not_o that_o any_o man_n live_v in_o that_o time_n of_o the_o reign_n of_o antichrist_n may_v before_o hand_n by_o this_o reckon_n certain_o know_v the_o very_a day_n of_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n and_o of_o christ_n his_o come_n to_o judgement_n 13.32_o but_o of_o that_o day_n and_o hour_n know_v no_o man_n no_o not_o the_o angel_n of_o heaven_n but_o my_o father_n only_o say_v christ_n and_o therefore_o that_o opinion_n can_v possible_o be_v true_a but_o moreover_o sundry_a learned_a man_n do_v say_v that_o the_o prophecy_n of_o daniel_n touch_v the_o little_a horn_n there_o mention_v and_o the_o time_n ascribe_v to_o he_o concern_v not_o antichrist_n at_o all_o direct_o &_o proper_o but_o only_o antiochus_n epiphanes_n that_o cruel_a tyrant_n and_o great_a persecutor_n and_o afflict_a of_o those_o saint_n and_o ancient_a people_n of_o god_n the_o jew_n in_o who_o and_o who_o history_n they_o affirm_v that_o all_o those_o several_a time_n mention_v in_o daniel_n receive_v their_o full_a and_o due_a accomplishment_n but_o you_o allege_v that_o even_o some_o protestant_a writer_n do_v also_o expound_v the_o time_n and_o time_n and_o half_o a_o time_n mention_v in_o daniel_n as_o also_o the_o 1260_o day_n mention_v in_o the_o revelation_n there_o otherwise_o call_v 42_o month_n and_o a_o time_n and_o time_n and_o half_o a_o time_n to_o belong_v to_o antichrist_n howbeit_o you_o shall_v remember_v withal_o that_o even_o those_o protestant_n that_o so_o expound_v it_o do_v teach_v that_o those_o day_n and_o time_n for_o all_o that_o be_v not_o to_o be_v take_v literal_o as_o you_o take_v they_o but_o mystical_o and_o prophetical_o and_o namely_o not_o for_o so_o many_o common_a and_o natural_a day_n but_o for_o so_o many_o year_n that_o be_v to_o say_v for_o 1260_o year_n account_v every_o day_n for_o a_o year_n for_o so_o they_o say_v that_o in_o the_o scripture_n it_o be_v sometime_o use_v as_o in_o ezechiel_n where_o god_n say_v thus_o unto_o he_o thou_o shall_v bear_v the_o iniquity_n of_o the_o house_n of_o judah_n forty_o day_n i_o have_v appoint_v thou_o 4.6_o a_o day_n for_o a_o year_n so_o in_o the_o book_n of_o number_n god_n speak_v thus_o after_o the_o number_n of_o the_o day_n 34._o in_o which_o you_o search_v out_o the_o land_n even_o forty_o day_n every_o day_n for_o a_o year_n shall_v you_o bear_v your_o iniquity_n for_o forty_o year_n and_o you_o shall_v feel_v my_o breach_n of_o promise_n so_o again_o do_v the_o scripture_n mention_v a_o week_n of_o day_n and_o a_o week_n of_o year_n according_a whereunto_o 9.24_o the_o seventy_o week_n mention_v in_o daniel_n be_v also_o expound_v not_o of_o seventy_o week_n of_o day_n but_o of_o seventy_o week_n of_o year_n that_o be_v to_o say_v seventy_o time_n seven_o year_n which_o make_v 490_o year_n every_o day_n be_v reckon_v for_o a_o year_n for_o according_a to_o this_o computation_n and_o reckon_n of_o a_o day_n for_o a_o year_n be_v it_o that_o that_o prophecy_n have_v his_o accomplishment_n whereupon_o they_o conclude_v that_o antichrists_n persecution_n and_o reign_v be_v limit_v to_o a_o time_n and_o time_n and_o half_o a_o time_n expound_v by_o 1260_o day_n every_o day_n be_v to_o be_v reckon_v for_o a_o year_n as_o they_o take_v it_o be_v to_o have_v continuance_n for_o much_o long_a time_n than_o you_o suppose_v namely_o for_o 1260_o year_n which_o be_v far_o from_o your_o exposition_n and_o opinion_n who_o hold_v that_o antichrist_n shall_v reign_v but_o just_a three_o year_n and_o a_o half_a but_o if_o this_o exposition_n of_o reckon_v a_o day_n for_o a_o year_n seem_v as_o to_o some_o it_o do_v to_o search_v too_o near_o into_o god_n secret_n and_o to_o
it_o so_o likewise_o be_v antichrist_n describe_v under_o the_o name_n &_o figure_n of_o a_o beast_n as_o be_v also_o confess_v even_o by_o the_o adversary_n themselves_o 17._o and_o therefore_o neither_o can_v he_o be_v suppose_v one_o singular_a and_o particular_a person_n but_o a_o state_n and_o dominion_n wherein_o a_o succession_n of_o sundry_a person_n one_o after_o another_o be_v admit_v for_o whereas_o bellarmine_n answer_v that_o in_o the_o prophecy_n of_o daniel_n sometime_o by_o beast_n be_v signify_v whole_a state_n and_o kingdom_n and_o sometime_o particular_a person_n as_o in_o the_o eight_o chapter_n he_o say_v that_o by_o the_o ram_n be_v understand_v one_o particular_a king_n 8.20_o namely_o darius_n the_o last_o king_n of_o the_o persian_n he_o be_v much_o deceive_v and_o the_o text_n itself_o direct_o confute_v he_o affirm_v this_o ram_n to_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d reges_fw-la not_o one_o particular_a king_n but_o the_o king_n of_o the_o mede_n and_o persian_n so_o likewise_o by_o the_o goat_n in_o daniel_n be_v not_o mean_v one_o singular_a person_n namely_o alexander_n as_o bellarmine_n again_o mistake_v but_o the_o very_a kingdom_n or_o kingly_a state_n of_o grecia_n 8.21_o and_o the_o great_a horn_n between_o his_o eye_n be_v in_o the_o text_n itself_o expound_v to_o be_v the_o first_o king_n of_o that_o empire_n or_o kingdom_n of_o grecia_n which_o be_v alexander_n which_o horn_n be_v break_v off_o four_o other_o stand_v up_o in_o the_o stead_n of_o it_o so_o that_o by_o every_o beast_n in_o daniel_n you_o see_v that_o not_o any_o one_o particular_a person_n but_o a_o whole_a state_n empire_n kingdom_n or_o dominion_n be_v signify_v and_o intend_v and_o consequent_o antichrist_n be_v in_o the_o revelation_n of_o s._n john_n 17._o describe_v under_o the_o name_n of_o a_o beast_n must_v needs_o likewise_o be_v suppose_v not_o one_o singular_a and_o particular_a person_n but_o a_o whole_a state_n kingdom_n or_o dominion_n which_o admit_v many_o person_n to_o rule_v and_o reign_v in_o it_o one_o after_o another_o in_o succession_n a_o three_o argument_n to_o prove_v this_o be_v the_o exposition_n and_o acknowledgement_n of_o the_o rhemist_n themselves_o for_o touch_v the_o seven_o head_n of_o the_o beast_n that_o be_v of_o the_o latin_a or_o roman_a state_n 17.9_o the_o six_o head_n thereof_o be_v as_o themselves_o do_v show_v not_o one_o singular_a and_o particular_a person_n but_o a_o state_n kingdom_n or_o empire_n namely_o the_o roman_a empire_n wherein_o be_v divers_a that_o rule_v and_o reign_v in_o succession_n one_o after_o another_o now_o then_o if_o the_o six_o head_n of_o the_o beast_n be_v not_o one_o singular_a and_o particular_a man_n which_o themselves_o declare_v and_o affirm_v but_o a_o state_n and_o succession_n of_o man_n why_o shall_v they_o not_o grant_v antichrist_n who_o themselves_o also_o affirm_v to_o be_v the_o seven_o head_n of_o the_o beast_n to_o be_v likewise_o not_o one_o singular_a and_o particular_a person_n but_o a_o state_n and_o succession_n of_o person_n for_o they_o be_v both_o call_v head_n alike_o and_o there_o be_v no_o reason_n of_o difference_n that_o can_v be_v show_v more_o for_o the_o one_o then_o for_o the_o other_o a_o four_o argument_n be_v out_o of_o revelation_n the_o 20_o where_o the_o devil_n be_v bind_v for_o a_o thousand_o year_n s._n john_n see_v in_o vision_n etc._n the_o soul_n of_o they_o that_o be_v behead_v for_o the_o witness_n of_o jesus_n and_o for_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o which_o have_v not_o worship_v the_o beast_n nor_o his_o image_n nor_o have_v take_v his_o mark_n upon_o their_o forehead_n nor_o in_o their_o hand_n and_o they_o live_v and_o reign_v with_o christ_n those_o thousand_o year_n but_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o dead_a live_v not_o again_o until_o the_o thousand_o year_n be_v finish_v this_o be_v the_o first_o resurrection_n bless_a and_o holy_a be_v he_o that_o have_v part_n in_o the_o first_o resurrection_n for_o on_o such_o the_o second_o death_n have_v no_o power_n etc._n etc._n in_o which_o word_n you_o see_v mention_v make_v of_o a_o thousand_o year_n express_o in_o which_o this_o antichristian_a beast_n be_v in_o esse_fw-la some_o all_o that_o while_o lie_v dead_a in_o their_o sin_n and_o antichristian_a error_n and_o othersome_a rise_n from_o their_o sin_n and_o error_n to_o newness_n of_o life_n and_o to_o true_a christianity_n which_o be_v there_o call_v the_o first_o resurrection_n and_o these_o be_v say_v to_o live_v and_o not_o to_o be_v dead_a and_o to_o reign_v with_o christ_n subdue_a and_o get_v victory_n over_o themselves_o and_o over_o this_o antichristian_a beast_n like_o king_n &_o conqueror_n during_o all_o that_o time_n when_o therefore_o there_o be_v express_v mention_v make_v of_o a_o thousand_o year_n in_o which_o this_o antichristian_a beast_n have_v to_o do_v who_o do_v not_o perceive_v that_o antichrist_n can_v be_v one_o singular_a and_o particular_a man_n that_o shall_v reign_v only_o three_o year_n and_o a_o half_a but_o that_o he_o be_v and_o must_v needs_o be_v a_o state_n and_o succession_n of_o person_n that_o be_v thus_o direct_o discover_v to_o have_v have_v a_o continuance_n in_o the_o world_n for_o at_o least_o a_o thousand_o year_n a_o five_o argument_n be_v this_o that_o s._n john_n say_v thus_o 2.18_o it_o be_v the_o last_o time_n and_o as_o you_o have_v hear_v that_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o antichrist_n come_v even_o now_o there_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d many_o antichrist_n whereby_o we_o know_v that_o it_o be_v the_o last_o time_n where_o you_o may_v easy_o observe_v that_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o antichrist_n be_v not_o one_o particular_a person_n but_o many_o and_o that_o many_o antichrist_n be_v this_o antichrist_n for_o so_o the_o text_n itself_o declare_v in_o like_a sort_n he_o speak_v in_o his_o second_o epistle_n many_o deceiver_n be_v enter_v into_o this_o world_n 7._o which_o confess_v not_o that_o jesus_n christ_n be_v come_v in_o the_o flesh_n this_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o deceiver_n and_o the_o antichrist_n where_o again_o you_o see_v that_o not_o only_o one_o but_o many_o deceiver_n be_v this_o deceiver_n and_o the_o antichrist_n whereunto_o add_v also_o the_o opinion_n of_o diverse_a of_o the_o ancient_a father_n as_o of_o irenaeus_n origen_n chrysostome_n hierome_n ruffinus_n primasius_n augustine_n expound_v that_o place_n of_o matt._n 24._o which_o speak_v of_o many_o false_a christ_n and_o false_a prophet_n 24.24_o that_o shall_v arise_v and_o show_v great_a sign_n and_o wonder_n so_o that_o if_o it_o be_v possible_a they_o shall_v deceive_v the_o very_a elect_a as_o speak_v of_o antichrist_n for_o thereby_o also_o they_o give_v we_o to_o understand_v that_o antichrist_n be_v to_o be_v conceive_v to_o be_v many_o and_o not_o one_o singular_a person_n a_o six_o argument_n be_v take_v from_o the_o apostasy_n itself_o which_o s._n paul_n speak_v of_o which_o apostasy_n whether_o you_o expound_v it_o of_o the_o revolt_n and_o departure_n of_o so_o many_o multitude_n of_o people_n 2.3.7_o from_o the_o right_a faith_n and_o religion_n of_o christ_n or_o of_o a_o revolt_n from_o the_o roman_a empire_n by_o the_o king_n and_o prince_n of_o the_o earth_n or_o from_o both_o it_o can_v be_v otherwise_o intend_v than_o the_o work_n of_o many_o age_n bellarmine_n say_v that_o thereby_o we_o may_v rectissimè_fw-la most_o right_o understand_v antichrist_n himself_o and_o he_o cite_v diverse_a ancient_a father_n for_o the_o proof_n of_o that_o opinion_n now_o then_o if_o by_o the_o apostasy_n antichrist_n himself_o be_v most_o right_o understand_v as_o bellarmine_n teach_v and_o that_o this_o apostasy_n can_v in_o reason_n be_v otherwise_o suppose_v than_o the_o work_n of_o many_o age_n 2.7_o as_o he_o also_o show_v especial_o consider_v that_o the_o mystery_n of_o that_o iniquity_n or_o apostasy_n begin_v to_o work_v even_o in_o s._n paul_n day_n how_o can_v antichrist_n be_v right_o conceive_v to_o be_v one_o singular_a man_n that_o shall_v reign_v only_o three_o year_n and_o a_o half_a and_o no_o long_o yea_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o even_o in_o the_o false_a teacher_n and_o heretic_n which_o be_v in_o the_o apostle_n day_n 4.3_o and_o which_o be_v helper_n and_o worker_n in_o this_o apostasy_n and_o mystery_n of_o iniquity_n antichrist_n be_v for_o so_o have_v s._n john_n before_o assure_v we_o neither_o 7._o indeed_o can_v he_o afterward_o have_v be_v reveal_v disclose_v detect_v or_o discover_v unless_o he_o have_v be_v in_o esse_fw-la before_o 2.8_o in_o some_o secret_n hide_a close_a &_o covert_a sort_n for_o which_o cause_n theodoret_n also_o say_v that_o defectionem_fw-la appellat_fw-la a_fw-la ntichristi_fw-la praesentiam_fw-la 2._o s._n paul_n call_v the_o apostasy_n or_o defection_n the_o presence_n of_o
antichrist_n in_o that_o apostasy_n then_o or_o mystery_n of_o iniquity_n which_o begin_v to_o work_v even_o in_o s._n paul_n and_o s._n johns_n time_n it_o be_v apparent_a that_o antichrist_n be_v and_o consequent_o even_o then_o have_v his_o beginning_n and_o therefore_o while_o you_o suppose_v that_o antichrist_n be_v not_o yet_o come_v and_o that_o all_o this_o while_n namely_o for_o the_o space_n of_o above_o 1600_o year_n there_o have_v be_v but_o a_o preparation_n make_v for_o he_o and_o who_o when_o he_o come_v shall_v also_o continue_v but_o just_a three_o year_n and_o a_o half_a do_v you_o not_o perceive_v the_o unlikelyhood_n and_o utter_a incredibilitie_n of_o these_o conceit_n yea_o the_o premise_n consider_v do_v you_o not_o perceive_v the_o manifest_a falsehood_n and_o evident_a untruth_n of_o they_o why_o then_o shall_v any_o be_v any_o long_o delude_v with_o they_o chap._n iii_o where_o the_o pope_n be_v further_o show_v to_o be_v antichrist_n out_o of_o the_o thirteen_o chapter_n of_o the_o revelation_n there_o be_v two_o beast_n mention_v in_o this_o thirteen_o chapter_n of_o the_o revelation_n and_o what_o those_o two_o beast_n be_v must_v be_v inquire_v wherein_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o one_o will_v give_v a_o great_a light_n for_o the_o understanding_n of_o the_o other_o first_o therefore_o by_o a_o beast_n in_o this_o place_n according_a to_o the_o like_a phrase_n and_o manner_n of_o speech_n in_o daniel_n be_v not_o any_o singular_a or_o particular_a man_n but_o a_o state_n kingdom_n or_o dominion_n to_o be_v understand_v as_o i_o say_v before_o for_o so_o be_v the_o four_o beast_n mention_v in_o daniel_n expound_v in_o the_o text_n itself_o to_o be_v four_o king_n and_o those_o king_n 7.3.17.23_o be_v again_o express_o expound_v to_o be_v kingdom_n in_o the_o 23_o verse_n of_o the_o same_o chapter_n the_o next_o thing_n then_o to_o be_v inquire_v of_o be_v what_o kingdom_n state_n or_o dominion_n that_o be_v which_o be_v here_o mean_v 13.1_o by_o the_o beast_n with_o seven_o head_n and_o ten_o horn_n the_o most_o certain_a and_o undoubted_a exposition_n whereof_o we_o must_v fetch_v as_o i_o show_v before_o from_o the_o seventeen_o chapter_n of_o the_o revelation_n etc._n where_o this_o beast_n with_o seven_o head_n and_o ten_o horn_n be_v expound_v &_o declare_v for_o there_o the_o seven_o head_n be_v expound_v to_o be_v seven_o hill_n or_o mountain_n whereupon_o rome_n be_v seat_v they_o be_v further_o also_o there_o affirm_v to_o be_v seven_o king_n not_o rule_v all_o at_o once_o but_o successive_o one_o after_o another_o as_o appear_v by_o the_o text_n which_o say_v that_o five_o of_o these_o be_v fall_v 10._o one_o be_v and_o another_o be_v not_o yet_o come_v these_o seven_o king_n be_v those_o seven_o sort_n of_o supreme_a or_o princely_a government_n wherewith_o rome_n have_v be_v govern_v namely_o king_n consul_n decemvir_n tribune_n dictator_n emperor_n and_o pope_n whereof_o five_o be_v fall_v in_o the_o day_n of_o s._n john_n namely_o king_n consul_n decemvir_n tribune_n dictator_n one_o be_v that_o be_v the_o government_n of_o rome_n by_o emperor_n which_o be_v then_o in_o esse_fw-la in_o the_o day_n of_o s._n john_n and_o another_o be_v not_o yet_o come_v that_o be_v the_o government_n of_o rome_n by_o pope_n for_o the_o government_n of_o rome_n by_o pope_n be_v not_o then_o come_v to_o pass_v in_o the_o day_n of_o s._n john_n but_o come_v in_o afterward_o which_o government_n by_o pope_n be_v there_o say_v to_o be_v of_o a_o short_a continuance_n both_o 17.10_o for_o the_o comfort_n and_o encouragement_n of_o all_o god_n child_n against_o their_o fraud_n and_o persecution_n as_o also_o in_o respect_n of_o god_n account_n with_o who_o a_o thousand_o year_n be_v but_o as_o one_o day_n as_o s._n peter_n say_v 3.8_o and_o in_o respect_n also_o of_o eternity_n and_o everlasting_a happiness_n which_o god_n child_n do_v chief_o regard_v and_o in_o comparison_n whereof_o they_o make_v little_a or_o no_o reckon_n of_o the_o continuance_n of_o any_o time_n in_o this_o world_n how_o long_o soever_o otherwise_o it_o seem_v 18._o the_o ten_o horn_n be_v likewise_o there_o expound_v to_o be_v ten_o king_n which_o at_o that_o time_n namely_o in_o the_o day_n of_o s._n john_n have_v not_o receive_v a_o kingdom_n but_o shall_v afterward_o receive_v absolute_a power_n as_o king_n which_o ten_o king_n howsoever_o they_o have_v former_o give_v their_o help_n strength_n and_o power_n to_o the_o advance_n maintenance_n and_o defence_n of_o the_o whore_n of_o babylon_n that_o be_v of_o popish_a rome_n yet_o shall_v they_o afterward_o be_v alienate_v from_o she_o &_o abhor_v she_o and_o make_v her_o desolate_a and_o naked_a and_o consume_v she_o with_o fire_n and_o it_o be_v say_v to_o be_v the_o beast_n that_o be_v and_o be_v not_o and_o yet_o be_v in_o respect_n of_o the_o diverse_a change_n and_o mutation_n 17.8_o whereto_o that_o city_n of_o rome_n have_v be_v subject_a be_v in_o several_a time_n rule_v by_o several_a head_n and_o sundry_a sort_n of_o governor_n the_o description_n then_o of_o this_o beast_n with_o the_o seven_o head_n show_v it_o to_o be_v the_o state_n of_o rome_n or_o the_o roman_a state_n which_o be_v there_o purtray_v and_o decipher_v but_o because_o the_o text_n itself_o say_v that_o five_o of_o those_o be_v go_v and_o pass_v in_o the_o day_n of_o s._n john_n 17.10_o so_o that_o there_o need_v to_o be_v no_o further_o meddle_v with_o they_o and_o that_o only_a one_o be_v in_o esse_fw-la and_o being_n in_o that_o time_n namely_o the_o government_n of_o rome_n by_o emperor_n and_o that_o another_o be_v to_o come_v which_o be_v the_o government_n of_o that_o city_n of_o rome_n by_o pope_n it_o must_v therefore_o here_o be_v more_o special_o and_o more_o strict_o conceive_v and_o take_v namely_o in_o respect_n of_o that_o one_o head_n then_o present_a and_o of_o that_o other_o which_o be_v afterward_o to_o come_v the_o then_o present_a government_n of_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n all_o man_n know_v be_v by_o emperor_n and_o the_o government_n of_o it_o after_o the_o emperor_n be_v by_o pope_n so_o that_o the_o beast_n there_o more_o special_o intend_v be_v the_o roman_a state_n consider_v in_o the_o two_o last_o head_n thereof_o viz._n the_o emperor_n and_o the_o pope_n and_o therefore_o the_o text_n say_v that_o one_o of_o these_o head_n that_o be_v the_o six_o head_n of_o it_o 13.3.4_o viz._n the_o government_n of_o rome_n by_o emperor_n be_v as_o it_o be_v wound_v to_o death_n but_o his_o deadly_a wound_n be_v heal_v and_o so_o heal_v as_o that_o all_o the_o earth_n wonder_v or_o be_v in_o admiration_n after_o the_o beast_n that_o the_o roman_a state_n govern_v by_o emperor_n receive_v a_o wound_n be_v apparent_a not_o only_o by_o that_o which_o the_o goth_n hun_n vandal_n and_o other_o do_v unto_o it_o but_o especial_o by_o that_o which_o be_v do_v unto_o it_o afterward_o in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o lombard_n so_o that_o at_o last_o the_o roman_a empire_n be_v as_o it_o be_v wound_v to_o death_n but_o yet_o afterward_o that_o deadly_a wound_n be_v heal_v again_o namely_o in_o the_o pope_n viz._n when_o the_o pope_n have_v get_v the_o headship_n imperial_a majesty_n and_o monarchical_a and_o sovereign_a rule_n of_o that_o city_n and_o therein_o be_v set_v and_o establish_v above_o all_o emperor_n king_n prince_n and_o people_n for_o than_o be_v the_o time_n when_o all_o the_o earth_n have_v this_o beast_n in_o so_o high_a admiration_n and_o then_o do_v they_o say_v who_o be_v like_a unto_o the_o beast_n 13.3.4_o who_o be_v able_a to_o war_n with_o he_o yea_o of_o this_o beast_n it_o be_v then_o further_o say_v that_o to_o he_o be_v give_v power_n over_o every_o kindred_n and_o tongue_n and_o nation_n and_o that_o all_o that_o dwell_v upon_o the_o earth_n do_v worship_v he_o who_o name_n be_v not_o write_v in_o the_o book_n of_o life_n of_o the_o lamb_n etc._n etc._n which_o speech_n voice_n and_o admiration_n so_o great_a and_o so_o general_a and_o in_o that_o manner_n and_o sort_n produce_v do_v not_o so_o well_o and_o fit_o agree_v to_o charlemaigne_n or_o to_o any_o other_o whosoever_o as_o to_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n as_o may_v appear_v by_o further_a examination_n of_o it_o in_o the_o particular_n for_o although_o the_o beast_n here_o as_o it_o be_v take_v specialius_fw-la more_o special_o comprehend_v the_o roman_a state_n as_o it_o be_v govern_v both_o by_o emperor_n and_o pope_n successive_o one_o after_o another_o yet_o be_v take_v as_o sometime_o it_o be_v specialissimè_fw-la that_o be_v most_o special_o and_o most_o restrictive_o it_o betoken_v the_o roman_a state_n only_o as_o it_o be_v at_o last_o translate_v and_o settle_v in_o the_o pope_n first_o then_o
by_o this_o beast_n can_v be_v intend_v the_o roman_a heathen_a empire_n although_o that_o be_v also_o a_o very_a great_a persecutor_n of_o the_o saint_n and_o peole_a of_o god_n because_o the_o roman_a heathen_a empire_n be_v in_o esse_fw-la and_o being_n as_o every_o one_o know_v in_o s._n johns_n time_n and_o at_o the_o time_n of_o this_o revelation_n give_v and_o so_o be_v not_o this_o beast_n there_o most_o special_o take_v and_o intend_v for_o it_o be_v say_v of_o this_o beast_n that_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d ascensura_fw-la est_fw-la 17.8_o it_o shall_v afterward_o arise_v second_o this_o beast_n there_o most_o special_o speak_v of_o and_o intend_v to_o take_v away_o all_o manner_n of_o doubt_n in_o the_o case_n be_v express_o notify_v and_o affirm_v in_o the_o very_a text_n itself_o to_o be_v the_o eight_o head_n of_o the_o beast_n 11.7_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d is_n octavus_fw-la est_fw-la s._n rex_n and_o therefore_o be_v he_o far_o remote_a from_o the_o time_n of_o those_o old_a heathen_a persecute_v emperor_n three_o consider_v that_o this_o beast_n be_v say_v to_o come_v ex_fw-la abysso_fw-la out_o of_o the_o bottomless_a pit_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v the_o same_o beast_n that_o be_v likewise_o mention_v to_o come_v out_o of_o the_o same_o bottomless_a pit_n in_o rev._n 11.7_o which_o persecute_v the_o two_o witness_n there_o speak_v of_o and_o put_v they_o to_o death_n after_o the_o blow_n of_o the_o trumpet_n by_o the_o six_o angel_n this_o circumstance_n of_o time_n wherein_o this_o beast_n be_v and_o persecute_v the_o two_o witness_n be_v after_o the_o blow_n of_o the_o trumpet_n by_o the_o six_o angel_n even_o so_o near_o towards_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n for_o under_o the_o blow_n of_o the_o seven_o angel_n the_o world_n be_v to_o end_n rev._n 10._o and_o 7._o rev._n 11.15_o etc._n etc._n do_v also_o declare_v that_o it_o can_v be_v intend_v the_o roman_a heathen_a empire_n which_o be_v before_o the_o blow_n of_o the_o six_o angel_n and_o be_v so_o long_o since_o end_v and_o expire_v for_o the_o emperor_n cease_v to_o be_v heathen_n and_o become_v christian_n about_o 300_o year_n after_o christ_n in_o the_o day_n of_o constantine_n the_o first_o christian_a emperor_n four_o consider_v that_o the_o second_o beast_n under_o which_o antichrist_n in_o respect_n of_o his_o false_a doctrine_n counterfeit_a holiness_n 20._o miracle_n and_o other_o his_o spiritual_a action_n be_v more_o special_o describe_v be_v all_o one_o with_o he_o which_o be_v often_o otherwise_o call_v in_o the_o same_o revelation_n the_o false-prophet_n and_o remember_v withal_o that_o both_o the_o first_o beast_n and_o this_o second_o beast_n otherwise_o call_v the_o false-prophet_n live_v together_o and_o be_v both_o destroy_v together_o so_o that_o the_o first_o beast_n appear_v to_o be_v such_o a_o one_o as_o be_v to_o have_v a_o continuance_n in_o the_o world_n until_o the_o destruction_n of_o the_o second_o beast_n which_o be_v the_o false-prophet_n antichrist_n and_o therefore_o he_o can_v possible_o be_v intend_v the_o old_a roman_a heathen_a empire_n no_o nor_o yet_o the_o heretical_a arian_n empire_n for_o neither_o of_o these_o be_v of_o that_o long_a continuance_n yea_o they_o both_o be_v long_o since_o end_v and_o determine_v and_o yet_o be_v not_o antichrist_n that_o false-prophet_n destroy_v five_o here_o observe_v that_o this_o chapter_n of_o rev._n 13._o and_o the_o thing_n therein_o contain_v concern_v the_o beast_n be_v bring_v in_o and_o mention_v after_o that_o the_o seven_o angel_n have_v blow_v his_o trumpet_n etc._n during_o the_o continuance_n of_o who_o blow_v the_o church_n of_o christ_n be_v mighty_o to_o prevail_v and_o to_o be_v reform_v and_o the_o gospel_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n to_o flourish_v and_o get_v the_o upper_a hand_n against_o all_o adversary_n to_o the_o conversion_n at_o length_n both_o of_o jew_n and_o gentile_n unto_o christ_n and_o his_o religion_n wherewithal_o you_o may_v perceive_v etc._n what_o be_v the_o chief_a drift_n and_o scope_n of_o the_o whole_a book_n of_o the_o revelation_n as_o touch_v thing_n future_a in_o the_o church_n namely_o that_o it_o be_v to_o discover_v these_o two_o thing_n first_o the_o estate_n of_o the_o church_n as_o it_o grow_v by_o degree_n deform_v and_o corrupt_v comprise_v in_o the_o blowing_n of_o the_o trumpet_n by_o the_o first_o five_o angel_n and_o until_o the_o six_o angel_n also_o have_v begin_v to_o blow_v his_o trumpet_n and_o second_o the_o estate_n of_o the_o church_n as_o it_o grow_v again_o by_o degree_n reform_v and_o restore_v etc._n to_o her_o first_o and_o most_o ancient_a purity_n which_o happy_a reformation_n and_o cleanse_v of_o the_o church_n after_o so_o long_a a_o deformity_n and_o corruption_n grow_v in_o it_o do_v not_o begin_v nor_o be_v to_o begin_v as_o this_o prophecy_n show_v until_o after_o the_o time_n that_o the_o six_o angel_n have_v begin_v to_o blow_v his_o trumpet_n etc._n for_o then_o and_o not_o until_o then_o be_v the_o book_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n 10.2.10.11_o &_o everlasting_a gospel_n open_v &_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n religion_n therein_o contain_v preach_v once_o again_o in_o the_o world_n to_o discover_v &_o detect_v the_o before-hidden_a fraud_n false_a doctrine_n and_o impiety_n of_o antichrist_n whereupon_o follow_v etc._n a_o measure_n of_o god_n temple_n and_o of_o the_o right_a worshipper_n therein_o and_o some_o witness_n also_o of_o god_n truth_n and_o religion_n which_o do_v open_o show_v themselves_o and_o be_v put_v to_o death_n for_o profession_n and_o defence_n of_o the_o same_o truth_n after_o which_o and_o after_o the_o blow_n of_o the_o trumpet_n by_o the_o seven_o angel_n the_o reformation_n and_o restore_n of_o the_o church_n etc._n former_o begin_v be_v prosecute_v and_o further_o augment_v etc._n and_o much_o more_o and_o mighty_o enlarge_v and_o to_o be_v enlarge_v insomuch_o that_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n be_v after_o this_o blow_n of_o the_o trumpet_n by_o the_o seven_o angel_n very_o splendent_o describe_v and_o that_o she_o bring_v forth_o masculine_a and_o strong_a child_n 4.19_o unto_o god_n of_o who_o she_o travail_v in_o birth_n until_o christ_n be_v form_v in_o they_o such_o as_o neither_o fraud_n nor_o fury_n of_o the_o great_a red_a dragon_n the_o devil_n can_v daunt_v dismay_n or_o discourage_v of_o which_o sort_n be_v the_o albigense_n in_o who_o time_n be_v very_o famous_a and_o splendent_a church_n of_o valiant_a and_o courageous_a christian_n that_o take_v part_n with_o michael_n and_o fight_v against_o the_o dragon_n and_o his_o angel_n in_o the_o war_n of_o those_o time_n yea_o notwithstanding_o all_o that_o those_o great_a malignant_a adversary_n of_o the_o church_n namely_o the_o dragon_n the_o beast_n and_o the_o false-prophet_n do_v or_o can_v devise_v to_o do_v yet_o for_o all_o that_o do_v the_o church_n of_o christ_n continue_v still_o and_o increase_v etc._n and_o with_o the_o lamb_n christ_n jesus_n be_v there_o see_v stand_v upon_o mount_n zion_n 144000_o which_o take_v part_n with_o he_o and_o will_v not_o remove_v their_o station_n nor_o be_v withdraw_v from_o he_o and_o after_o this_o again_o be_v there_o record_n and_o mention_v make_v of_o these_o increase_a and_o courageous_a christian_n that_o still_o get_v the_o victory_n over_o the_o beast_n etc._n and_o his_o image_n and_o his_o mark_n and_o the_o number_n of_o his_o name_n and_o that_o sing_v the_o song_n of_o moses_n with_o much_o praise_n and_o thanksgiving_n unto_o god_n therefore_o and_o in_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o chapter_n follow_v namely_o in_o the_o 16_o 17_o 18_o 19_o of_o the_o revelation_n not_o only_o the_o true_a church_n be_v show_v to_o prosper_v and_o prevail_v but_o to_o the_o enemy_n and_o adversary_n thereof_o be_v threaten_v and_o do_v befall_v the_o viol_n of_o god_n wrath_n calamity_n misery_n and_o destruction_n in_o their_o appoint_a time_n but_o thus_o it_o appear_v which_o be_v my_o purpose_n to_o show_v that_o the_o beast_n here_o mention_v as_o it_o be_v most_o special_o and_o most_o restrictive_o take_v can_v be_v mean_v of_o the_o old_a roman_a heathen_a empire_n nor_o yet_o of_o the_o heretical_a arrian_n empire_n because_o both_o these_o kind_n of_o empire_n cease_v and_o be_v end_v long_o before_o this_o time_n of_o the_o blow_n of_o the_o trumpet_n by_o the_o seven_o angel_n now_o let_v we_o see_v whether_o the_o german_a empire_n can_v be_v here_o intend_v and_o it_o be_v very_o manifest_a also_o that_o it_o can_v for_o although_o the_o emperor_n of_o germany_n be_v call_v king_n of_o the_o roman_n and_o have_v the_o title_n of_o emperor_n yet_o have_v he_o not_o rome_n the_o seat_n of_o the_o old_a roman_a empire_n neither_o have_v he_o any_o principality_n headship_n or_o sovereignty_n there_o how_o then_o
beast_n for_o it_o be_v the_o number_n of_o a_o man_n that_o be_v such_o as_o a_o man_n by_o his_o understanding_n may_v possible_o attain_v unto_o and_o his_o number_n be_v 666._o that_o which_o be_v here_o call_v the_o number_n of_o the_o beast_n 15.2_o be_v in_o the_o very_a next_o verse_n go_v before_o and_o elsewhere_o also_o call_v the_o number_n of_o the_o name_n of_o the_o beast_n now_o although_o it_o may_v be_v a_o hard_a and_o difficult_a matter_n before_o the_o accomplishment_n of_o this_o prophecy_n to_o find_v out_o this_o number_n of_o the_o name_n of_o the_o beast_n yet_o after_o the_o accomplishment_n of_o it_o it_o be_v not_o so_o hard_a a_o matter_n first_o therefore_o they_o be_v much_o deceive_v who_o take_v this_o to_o be_v the_o proper_a name_n of_o some_o one_o particular_a man_n or_o singular_a person_n for_o the_o text_n itself_o show_v it_o to_o be_v the_o name_n not_o of_o any_o particular_a man_n but_o of_o a_o beast_n that_o be_v of_o a_o state_n kingdom_n or_o dominion_n and_o declare_v it_o also_o to_o be_v the_o name_n of_o the_o beast_n that_o have_v seven_o head_n that_o be_v of_o the_o latin_a or_o roman_a state_n the_o beast_n then_o be_v now_o find_v out_o and_o know_v to_o be_v the_o latin_a or_o roman_a state_n it_o be_v so_o much_o the_o more_o easy_a to_o search_v and_o find_v out_o whether_o the_o number_n of_o this_o beast_n name_n that_o be_v of_o the_o latin_a or_o roman_a state_n do_v in_o the_o numeral_a letter_n thereof_o contain_v just_a 666._o for_o if_o it_o contain_v just_a that_o number_n then_o for_o that_o cause_n also_o will_v this_o matter_n be_v so_o much_o the_o more_o apparent_a in_o what_o language_n then_o be_v we_o to_o reckon_v it_o most_o likely_a either_o in_o the_o hebrew_n because_o the_o revelation_n as_o some_o think_v be_v give_v in_o hebrew_n to_o s._n john_n be_v a_o hebrew_n borne_n or_o else_o in_o greek_a because_o the_o revelation_n be_v write_v in_o greek_a and_o that_o also_o to_o the_o greek_a church_n and_o all_o the_o letter_n in_o both_o these_o language_n be_v also_o numeral_a whereas_o the_o letter_n in_o the_o latin_a tongue_n be_v not_o all_o numeral_a gender_n though_o some_o be_v if_o then_o you_o ask_v in_o hebrew_n what_o malcuth_n that_o be_v what_o kingdom_n this_o be_v which_o be_v here_o speak_v of_o a_o fit_a and_o congruous_a answer_n be_v make_v in_o the_o same_o hebrew_n language_n that_o it_o be_v romijth_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o signify_v roman_a denote_v it_o thereby_o to_o be_v the_o roman_a state_n or_o roman_a kingdom_n which_o word_n in_o hebrew_n do_v in_o the_o numeral_a letter_n thereof_o contain_v the_o just_a number_n of_o 666._o if_o again_o you_o ask_v in_o greek_a what_o basileia_n that_o be_v what_o kingdom_n it_o be_v it_o be_v likewise_o fit_o and_o full_o answer_v in_o greek_a that_o it_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o latin_a kingdom_n or_o the_o latin_a state_n which_o name_n of_o the_o beast_n so_o produce_v in_o greek_a do_v also_o in_o the_o numeral_a letter_n thereof_o contain_v the_o just_a number_n of_o 666._o or_o if_o you_o will_v think_v it_o fit_a to_o reckon_v it_o in_o the_o latin_a tongue_n which_o be_v the_o proper_a tongue_n of_o the_o beast_n as_o possible_o it_o be_v so_o to_o be_v reckon_v for_o in_o the_o latin_a tongue_n some_o letter_n be_v also_o numeral_a though_o all_o be_v not_o what_o name_n or_o title_n have_v the_o pope_n who_o have_v get_v to_o himself_o this_o headship_n and_o sovereign_a rule_n of_o rome_n be_v he_o not_o usual_o call_v vicarius_fw-la generalis_fw-la dei_fw-la in_o terris_fw-la god_n vicar_n general_a upon_o earth_n and_o do_v not_o these_o word_n thus_o produce_v in_o latin_a contain_v in_o they_o in_o the_o numeral_a letter_n or_o character_n the_o just_a number_n of_o 666_o it_o be_v clear_a and_o apparent_a that_o they_o do_v so_o that_o whether_o you_o consider_v the_o latin_a or_o roman_a state_n simple_o by_o itself_o or_o as_o it_o be_v long_o since_o translate_v or_o bring_v to_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n the_o last_o head_n thereof_o you_o find_v in_o all_o the_o three_o language_n both_o of_o latin_a greek_a and_o hebrew_n which_o be_v count_v the_o three_o learned_a language_n of_o the_o world_n the_o number_n of_o the_o beast_n fit_o to_o agree_v yea_o these_o very_a word_n latinus_n status_fw-la ad_fw-la papas_n allatus_fw-la direct_o signify_v the_o latin_a state_n as_o it_o be_v now_o long_o since_o translate_v and_o bring_v unto_o the_o pope_n contain_v in_o the_o numeral_a letter_n thereof_o the_o just_a number_n of_o 666_o which_o be_v therefore_o a_o thing_n not_o unworthy_a the_o note_n and_o observe_v 29._o irenaeus_n who_o master_n be_v polycarpus_n disciple_n to_o s_o john_n that_o receive_v this_o revelation_n say_v that_o the_o number_n of_o the_o name_n of_o the_o beast_n shall_v contain_v 666_o according_a to_o the_o computation_n of_o the_o greek_n by_o the_o letter_n that_o be_v in_o it_o he_o therefore_o reckon_v other_o name_n as_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o neither_o of_o which_o there_o be_v any_o likelihood_n that_o any_o of_o they_o shall_v be_v this_o name_n see_v none_o of_o these_o be_v the_o name_n of_o a_o beast_n that_o be_v of_o a_o kingdom_n or_o state_n set_v down_o the_o name_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d whereof_o he_o write_v thus_o sed_fw-la &_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d nomen_fw-la sexcentorum_fw-la sexaginta_fw-la sex_n numerum_fw-la &_o valde_fw-la verisimile_fw-la est_fw-la quoniam_fw-la verissimum_fw-la regnum_fw-la hoc_fw-la habet_fw-la vocabulum_fw-la latini_n enim_fw-la sunt_fw-la qui_fw-la nunc_fw-la regnant_a but_o the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d lateinos_fw-la contain_v also_o the_o number_n of_o 666_o and_o this_o be_v very_o likely_a say_v he_o to_o be_v the_o name_n because_o the_o most_o true_a kingdom_n have_v this_o name_n for_o they_o be_v latin_n which_o now_o reign_n where_o you_o see_v even_o by_o irenaeus_n his_o testimony_n first_o that_o the_o beast_n here_o mention_v signify_v a_o kingdom_n or_o state_n second_o that_o his_o name_n contain_v the_o number_n of_o 666_o must_v be_v in_o greek_a and_o reckon_v by_o the_o numeral_a letter_n of_o the_o name_n in_o that_o language_n and_o three_o he_o say_v that_o it_o be_v very_o likely_a to_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d all_o which_o very_o fit_o agree_v as_o be_v apparent_a to_o the_o latin_a state_n not_o only_o as_o it_o be_v rule_v by_o emperor_n but_o as_o it_o be_v sithence_o also_o rule_v by_o pope_n for_o in_o the_o papacy_n also_o latin_a be_v in_o chief_a request_n and_o prefer_v before_o all_o other_o language_n all_o their_o service_n be_v in_o latin_a the_o people_n be_v teach_v to_o pray_v in_o latin_a the_o scripture_n be_v not_o allow_v of_o but_o according_a to_o their_o latin_a translation_n and_o it_o be_v common_o and_o vulgar_o call_v the_o latin_a religion_n etc._n etc._n what_o therefore_o irenaeus_n in_o those_o ancient_a time_n affirm_v to_o be_v very_o probable_a and_o likely_a we_o live_v so_o many_o hundred_o year_n after_o he_o and_o see_v the_o accomplishment_n of_o this_o prophecy_n do_v and_o must_v conclude_v it_o by_o the_o event_n to_o be_v not_o only_o probable_a and_o likely_a but_o necessary_o true_a and_o undoubted_a that_o it_o be_v the_o latin_a kingdom_n or_o roman_a state_n which_o be_v there_o intend_a and_o describe_v as_o for_o that_o bellarmine_n and_o some_o other_o papist_n say_v that_o the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d may_v not_o be_v write_v with_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d but_o with_o a_o simple_a jota_n it_o be_v too_o vain_a a_o cavil_n for_o irenaeus_n be_v a_o grecian_a bear_v know_v how_o to_o write_v greek_a i_o hope_v aswell_o as_o bellarmine_n or_o any_o other_o that_o take_v the_o exception_n second_o even_o mean_a scholar_n in_o that_o tongue_n do_v know_v that_o it_o may_v be_v write_v both_o way_n and_o that_o it_o be_v no_o new_a or_o strange_a thing_n with_o they_o to_o write_v i_o long_a by_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d as_o atrides_n and_o aristides_n be_v write_v in_o greek_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d so_o nilus_n epirus_n and_o mithras_n be_v write_v in_o greek_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d especial_o when_o n_o follow_v i_o long_o it_o be_v the_o observation_n of_o joseph_n scaliger_n himself_o in_o his_o note_n upon_o eusebius_n chronicle_n pag._n 106_o that_o the_o grecian_n do_v turn_v the_o i_o of_o the_o latin_n into_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d as_o in_o these_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d this_o therefore_o appear_v to_o be_v a_o very_a frivolous_a and_o idle_a exception_n and_o as_o touch_v
care_n for_o the_o preservation_n of_o the_o church_n good_n whole_o and_o entire_o to_o themselves_o but_o again_o be_v it_o not_o gross_a hypocrisy_n and_o dissimulation_n for_o they_o to_o pretend_v chastity_n in_o this_o matter_n wherein_o there_o appear_v to_o be_v none_o at_o all_o but_o the_o clean_a contrary_n for_o how_o can_v the_o forbid_v of_o marriage_n to_o such_o as_o have_v not_o the_o gift_n of_o continency_n tend_v to_o chastity_n yea_o how_o can_v it_o otherwise_o tend_v but_o to_o unchastitie_n filthiness_n dishonesty_n and_o uncleanness_n yea_o what_o a_o great_a affecter_n of_o chastity_n the_o popish_a church_n be_v may_v appear_v by_o the_o canon_n be_v qui_fw-la in_o the_o 34_o distinction_n the_o inscription_n whereof_o be_v this_o he_o that_o have_v no_o wife_n let_v he_o in_o stead_n of_o a_o wife_n have_v a_o concubine_n the_o canon_n follow_v be_v this_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o a_o christian_n to_o have_v i_o do_v not_o say_v many_o wife_n but_o not_o so_o much_o as_o two_o wife_n but_o only_o one_o wife_n or_o in_o defect_n thereof_o a_o concubine_n likewise_o the_o canon_n dilectissimis_fw-la in_o the_o 12_o cause_n and_o the_o first_o question_n do_v approve_v of_o plato_n opinion_n the_o wise_a among_o the_o greek_n which_o say_v all_o thing_n shall_v be_v common_a among_o friend_n now_o under_o this_o name_n of_o all_o thing_n say_v this_o canon_n man_n wife_n also_o be_v comprehend_v but_o i_o shall_v need_v to_o say_v no_o more_o herein_o because_o the_o premise_n as_o touch_v this_o point_n of_o forbid_a marriage_n under_o pretence_n of_o chastity_n and_o religion_n when_o there_o be_v neither_o chastity_n nor_o religion_n in_o it_o but_o the_o clean_a contrary_n do_v sufficient_o declare_v the_o popish_a church_n to_o be_v very_o clear_o and_o undoubted_o antichristian_a 4_o the_o second_o mark_n of_o the_o apostatical_a and_o antichristian_a church_n out_o of_o this_o text_n be_v a_o command_a to_o abstain_v from_o meat_n for_o religion_n sake_n and_o this_o note_n or_o mark_v be_v also_o find_v very_o evident_o to_o be_v in_o the_o popish_a church_n 4.3_o for_o in_o the_o papacy_n the_o people_n be_v enjoin_v and_o that_o not_o for_o politic_a or_o civil_a respect_n but_o for_o piety_n and_o religion_n sake_n to_o abstain_v from_o flesh-meate_n and_o other_o meat_n on_o certain_a day_n and_o time_n by_o they_o appoint_v although_o nevertheless_o on_o the_o same_o day_n and_o time_n they_o permit_v fish_n of_o all_o sort_n to_o be_v eat_v and_o wine_n also_o to_o be_v take_v yea_o they_o not_o only_o account_v it_o a_o sin_n against_o god_n to_o eat_v flesh_n on_o those_o day_n but_o do_v also_o repose_v matter_n of_o merit_n and_o satisfaction_n to_o god_n justice_n for_o their_o sin_n in_o that_o their_o abstinence_n and_o in_o such_o their_o obedience_n perform_v to_o their_o mother_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n howbeit_o s._n paul_n contrariwise_o say_v that_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n be_v not_o meat_n nor_o drink_v but_o righteousness_n 14.17_o and_o peace_n in_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o again_o he_o say_v if_o any_o of_o they_o which_o believe_v not_o bid_v you_o to_o a_o feast_n and_o if_o you_o will_v go_v 2d_o whatsoever_o be_v set_v before_o you_o eat_v ask_v no_o question_n for_o conscience_n sake_n yea_o christ_n jesus_n himself_o show_v that_o they_o be_v not_o meat_n and_o drink_n moderate_o take_v but_o other_o thing_n that_o defile_v a_o man_n for_o say_v he_o perceive_v you_o not_o that_o whatsoever_o enter_v into_o the_o mouth_n go_v into_o the_o belly_n and_o be_v cast_v out_o into_o the_o draught_n 20._o but_o those_o thing_n which_o proceed_v out_o of_o the_o mouth_n come_v from_o the_o heart_n and_o they_o defile_v a_o man_n for_o out_o of_o the_o heart_n come_v evil_a thought_n murder_n adultery_n fornica●ions_n theft_n false_a testimony_n slander_n these_o be_v the_o thing_n that_o defile_v a_o man_n and_o again_o he_o say_v express_o that_o which_o go_v into_o the_o mouth_n defile_v not_o a_o man_n but_o that_o which_o come_v out_o of_o the_o mouth_n that_o defile_v a_o man_n 15.11_o do_v not_o these_o testimony_n manifest_o prove_v that_o good_a and_o true_a christian_a religion_n and_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n consist_v not_o in_o these_o outward_a thing_n of_o meat_n and_o drink_n but_o in_o thing_n inward_a seat_v in_o the_o heart_n of_o a_o man_n as_o namely_o 14.17_o in_o righteousness_n in_o peace_n and_o in_o joy_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o such_o like_a yea_o when_o god_n thus_o permit_v aswell_o flesh_n as_o fish_v to_o be_v eat_v and_o say_v express_o that_o the_o eat_v of_o it_o defile_v not_o a_o man_n can_v any_o popish_a prohibition_n make_v it_o to_o defile_v a_o man_n or_o to_o be_v sin_n in_o his_o sight_n which_o himself_o affirm_v to_o be_v none_o for_o they_o say_v that_o though_o god_n have_v not_o forbid_v it_o yet_o their_o mother_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v forbid_v it_o upon_o pain_n of_o deadly_a sin_n and_o damnation_n howbeit_o this_o excuse_v not_o yea_o herein_o it_o be_v that_o their_o church_n do_v disclose_v and_o declare_v herself_o to_o be_v in_o very_a deed_n antichristian_a in_o thus_o exalt_v herself_o against_o god_n and_o dare_v to_o forbid_v that_o in_o the_o way_n of_o religion_n which_o he_o have_v not_o forbid_v but_o contrariwise_o have_v allow_v in_o his_o religion_n the_o true_a church_n have_v but_o one_o lawgiver_n as_o s._n james_n speak_v and_o that_o be_v god_n to_o make_v and_o give_v law_n 4.12_o to_o bind_v the_o soul_n and_o conscience_n and_o to_o certificus_fw-la what_o be_v sin_n and_o what_o be_v not_o sin_n in_o his_o sight_n how_o then_o can_v any_o prohibition_n of_o the_o pope_n 4_o or_o popish_a church_n make_v that_o to_o be_v sin_n against_o god_n and_o his_o religion_n which_o god_n himself_o affirm_v not_o to_o be_v so_o yea_o the_o contrary_a whereof_o he_o teach_v and_o affirm_v but_o consider_v yet_o further_o what_o mother_n it_o be_v that_o they_o be_v so_o careful_a to_o obey_v etc._n and_o whether_o she_o be_v not_o the_o mother_n of_o whoredom_n and_o abomination_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o even_o the_o whore_n of_o babylon_n as_o she_o be_v before_o declare_v to_o be_v out_o of_o the_o revelation_n of_o s._n john_n for_o it_o will_v be_v small_a honour_n joy_n or_o comfort_n for_o any_o to_o show_v or_o perform_v obedience_n to_o such_o a_o mother_n yea_o all_o god_n people_n be_v express_o command_v by_o a_o voice_n from_o heaven_n to_o forsake_v that_o mother_n and_o to_o go_v out_o of_o she_o lest_o be_v partaker_n of_o her_o sin_n they_o also_o receive_v of_o her_o plague_n 18.4_o and_o therefore_o whilst_o they_o do_v it_o in_o obedience_n to_o such_o a_o mother_n their_o sin_n be_v not_o thereby_o lessen_v but_o be_v so_o much_o the_o great_a yea_o whilst_o your_o church_n be_v thus_o bold_a to_o give_v this_o prohibition_n s._n paul_n even_o in_o this_o place_n to_o timothy_n tell_v you_o that_o god_n be_v so_o far_o from_o prohibit_v or_o forbid_v any_o meat_n in_o his_o religion_n that_o contrariwise_o he_o have_v create_v they_o to_o that_o very_a end_n 5._o to_o be_v receive_v and_o that_o with_o thanksgiving_n and_o he_o there_o further_o teach_v that_o they_o be_v so_o far_o from_o have_v any_o sin_n pollution_n or_o uncleanness_n in_o they_o to_o a_o faithful_a and_o well_o persuade_v christian_n as_o that_o they_o be_v to_o he_o clean_a contrariwise_o sanctify_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o prayer_n can_v any_o thing_n be_v more_o forcible_o speak_v to_o confute_v that_o prohibition_n but_o among_o the_o rest_n this_o be_v most_o intolerable_a that_o they_o place_n remission_n of_o sin_n or_o matter_n of_o merit_n or_o satisfaction_n to_o god_n justice_n for_o their_o sin_n in_o this_o their_o abstinence_n from_o flesh_n and_o betake_v themselves_o to_o fish_n and_o other_o meat_n which_o they_o also_o call_v fast_v for_o first_o do_v ever_o any_o true_a christian_n religion_n teach_v a_o fast_a acceptable_a to_o god_n and_o allow_v of_o he_o to_o consist_v in_o difference_n of_o meat_n or_o which_o be_v all_o one_o in_o absteyn_v from_o some_o kind_n of_o meat_n and_o eat_v of_o othersome_a as_o namely_o in_o absteyn_v from_o flesh_n and_o eat_v of_o fish_n or_o such_o like_a a_o true_a christian_n fast_n whether_o it_o be_v public_a or_o private_a be_v to_o eat_v neither_o flesh_n nor_o fish_n nor_o any_o thing_n at_o all_o for_o that_o day_n or_o time_n that_o be_v so_o dedicate_v for_o humiliation_n in_o god_n sight_n and_o beside_o it_o have_v always_o humble_a earnest_a fervent_a and_o repentant_a prayer_n join_v with_o it_o and_o a_o serious_a and_o deep_a meditation_n and_o contemplation_n of_o divine_a &_o heavenly_a
of_o his_o most_o holy_a and_o most_o pure_a religion_n and_o ordinance_n deliver_v in_o the_o sacred_a and_o canonical_a scripture_n the_o infallible_a rule_n of_o truth_n for_o do_v you_o think_v that_o ever_o christ_n and_o antichrist_n will_v agree_v together_o what_o have_v the_o chaff_n to_o do_v with_o the_o wheat_n say_v the_o lord_n or_o 23.28_o what_o fellowship_n as_o s._n paul_n speak_v have_v righteousness_n with_o unrighteousness_n 6.14.15.16_o what_o communion_n have_v light_a with_o darkness_n what_o concord_n have_v christ_n with_o belial_n what_o part_n have_v the_o believer_n with_o the_o infidel_n what_o agreement_n have_v the_o temple_n of_o god_n with_o idol_n in_o some_o thing_n i_o grant_v the_o popish_a church_n hold_v right_o and_o in_o all_o thing_n such_o be_v the_o mystery_n of_o iniquity_n make_v a_o semblance_n and_o pretence_n of_o piety_n and_o christianity_n but_o take_v heed_n and_o be_v not_o here_o with_o deceive_v for_o beside_o that_o it_o be_v the_o nature_n and_o manner_n of_o hypocrisy_n so_o to_o do_v you_o now_o i_o hope_v do_v sufficient_o understand_v that_o neither_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n can_v be_v antichrist_n nor_o his_o church_n be_v the_o antichristian_a unless_o they_o do_v make_v this_o semblance_n of_o piety_n &_o outward_a sh●w_n and_o pretence_n of_o christianity_n yea_o clear_o they_o shall_v be_v altogether_o unchristian_a and_o not_o antichristian_a people_n if_o they_o make_v no_o semblance_n or_o profession_n at_o all_o of_o christ._n but_o all_o be_v not_o gold_n that_o glister_v nor_o that_o ever_o right_a and_o true_a christianity_n that_o seem_v to_o be_v so_o the_o devil_n himself_o will_v hold_v some_o thing_n right_o and_o will_v sometime_o utter_v and_o tell_v some_o truth_n but_o it_o be_v to_o the_o end_n to_o gain_v credit_n and_o belief_n to_o himself_o at_o other_o time_n and_o in_o other_o thing_n when_o and_o wherein_o he_o speak_v lie_n and_o this_o craft_n and_o subtlety_n have_v all_o antichristian_a and_o false_a teacher_n learned_a and_o do_v practice_v be_v as_o s._n paul_n call_v they_o false-apostle_n deceitful_a workman_n 11.13.14.15_o transform_v themselves_o into_o the_o apostle_n of_o christ_n and_o no_o marvel_n say_v he_o for_o satan_n also_o himself_o be_v transform_v into_o a_o angel_n of_o light_n therefore_o it_o be_v no_o great_a thing_n though_o his_o minister_n transform_v themselves_o as_o though_o they_o be_v the_o minister_n of_o righteousness_n who_o end_n shall_v be_v according_a to_o their_o work_n now_o then_o concern_v the_o king_n supremacy_n and_o his_o authority_n in_o all_o kind_n of_o cause_n and_o over_o all_o sort_n of_o people_n aswell_o ecclesiastical_a as_o civil_a you_o see_v what_o it_o be_v and_o you_o understand_v i_o trust_v the_o clear_a lawfulness_n of_o it_o within_o his_o own_o dominion_n for_o a_o time_n there_o be_v as_o before_o be_v show_v when_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v limit_v his_o precinct_n and_o bound_n aswell_o as_o other_o bishop_n and_o have_v no_o more_o supremacy_n or_o authority_n over_o other_o bishop_n than_o they_o have_v over_o he_o yea_o a_o time_n there_o be_v when_o bishop_n in_o a_o council_n assemble_v have_v authority_n over_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n and_o might_n and_o actual_o do_v depose_v he_o and_o when_o also_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v subject_a to_o the_o emperor_n and_o at_o his_o command_n as_o be_v likewise_o before_o declare_v so_o that_o the_o best_a title_n which_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n at_o any_o time_n have_v to_o his_o supremacy_n within_o any_o kingdom_n appear_v to_o be_v not_o by_o any_o institution_n or_o law_n of_o god_n but_o by_o a_o humane_a constitution_n only_o and_o a_o positive_a law_n and_o see_v that_o this_o his_o supremacy_n be_v afterward_o put_v down_o again_o dissolve_v and_o abolish_v within_o this_o kingdom_n as_o also_o in_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o his_o majesty_n dominion_n by_o as_o high_a and_o as_o good_a authority_n as_o at_o any_o time_n it_o be_v erect_v and_o establish_v in_o the_o same_o namely_o by_o act_n of_o parliament_n make_v within_o those_o realm_n every_o subject_n to_o his_o majesty_n now_o stand_v tie_v and_o bind_v in_o duty_n utter_o to_o renounce_v and_o forsake_v it_o if_o yet_o you_o allege_v as_o you_o sometime_o do_v that_o for_o the_o space_n of_o divers_a hundred_o year_n in_o the_o late_a time_n the_o king_n and_o prince_n in_o christendom_n submit_v themselves_o to_o this_o supremacy_n of_o the_o pope_n i_o answer_v first_o that_o it_o be_v apparent_a that_o non_fw-la fuit_fw-la sic_fw-la ab_fw-la initio_fw-la it_o be_v not_o so_o from_o the_o beginning_n and_o that_o the_o most_o ancient_a precedent_n be_v to_o the_o contrary_n second_o that_o this_o be_v to_o fulfil_v a_o prophecy_n in_o the_o scripture_n which_o foretell_v that_o so_o it_o shall_v come_v to_o pass_v namely_o that_o these_o king_n shall_v 13.17_o with_o one_o consent_n submit_v or_o give_v their_o kingdom_n unto_o the_o beast_n until_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v fulfil_v yea_o these_o king_n not_o only_o submit_v themselves_o and_o their_o kingdom_n to_o this_o supremacy_n of_o the_o pope_n but_o to_o the_o adulterate_a religion_n likewise_o of_o that_o whore_n of_o babylon_n the_o papal_a city_n of_o rome_n to_o fulfil_v the_o like_a prophecy_n which_o say_v that_o with_o she_o have_v commit_v fornication_n the_o king_n of_o the_o earth_n 14.8_o and_o the_o inhabitant_n of_o the_o earth_n have_v be_v make_v drunken_a with_o the_o wine_n of_o her_o fornication_n inasmuch_o then_o as_o these_o thing_n be_v thus_o foretell_v in_o holy_a scripture_n to_o come_v to_o pass_v what_o marvel_n shall_v it_o now_o be_v to_o any_o to_o see_v and_o know_v they_o to_o have_v be_v accomplish_v accorcord_o but_o yet_o three_o observe_v that_o although_o these_o king_n do_v for_o so_o long_a time_n yield_v and_o submit_v themselves_o and_o the_o people_n of_o their_o kingdom_n to_o this_o beast_n &_o whore_n of_o babylon_n yet_o the_o late_a part_n of_o this_o prophecy_n remain_v to_o be_v fulfil_v which_o be_v this_o that_o ten_o of_o these_o king_n that_o be_v so_o long_o enchant_v and_o bewitch_v with_o this_o whore_n and_o seduce_v and_o abuse_v by_o she_o shall_v afterward_o discern_v and_o espy_v her_o fraud_n and_o wickedness_n and_o thereupon_o shall_v detest_v and_o hate_v she_o 2.8_o make_v she_o desolate_a and_o naked_a eat_v her_o flesh_n and_o shall_v burn_v she_o with_o fire_n which_o prophecy_n as_o it_o be_v already_o begin_v to_o be_v perform_v in_o some_o of_o these_o king_n which_o have_v fall_v from_o she_o hate_v and_o detest_a both_o her_o authority_n and_o her_o adulterate_a religion_n so_o shall_v it_o in_o all_o the_o part_n and_o point_n of_o it_o in_o the_o due_a time_n appoint_v of_o god_n be_v full_o and_o actual_o perform_v and_o accomplish_v the_o long_a continuance_n then_o of_o pope_n and_o popery_n in_o the_o world_n be_v no_o argument_n or_o proof_n of_o the_o lawfulness_n or_o allowablenesse_n of_o they_o for_o beside_o that_o it_o be_v foretell_v to_o be_v of_o that_o long_a continuance_n mahometisme_n paganism_n heresy_n and_o error_n drunkenness_n adultery_n and_o sundry_a other_o sin_n and_o vice_n be_v also_o very_o ancient_a and_o of_o long_a continuance_n in_o the_o world_n yet_o do_v not_o that_o make_v they_o therefore_o to_o be_v ever_o the_o more_o lawful_a or_o allowable_a yea_o the_o long_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n and_o his_o adulterate_a religion_n have_v continue_v the_o great_a wrong_a and_o injury_n have_v be_v do_v all_o that_o while_n not_o only_o to_o all_o other_o bishop_n in_o the_o world_n and_o to_o all_o emperor_n king_n and_o prince_n likewise_o but_o also_o to_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o religion_n of_o god_n and_o even_o to_o god_n himself_o and_o therefore_o this_o make_v not_o for_o the_o uphold_v or_o confirmation_n but_o for_o the_o further_o and_o great_a detestation_n and_o condemnation_n of_o they_o both_o 2_o so_o that_o no_o sufficient_a cause_n or_o reason_n can_v any_o of_o you_o show_v why_o you_o shall_v refuse_v to_o be_v of_o our_o religion_n or_o why_o you_o shall_v not_o all_o come_v to_o our_o church_n &_o assembly_n and_o join_v with_o we_o in_o the_o right_n and_o true_a service_n of_o god_n for_o first_o where_o you_o suppose_v we_o the_o protestant_a religion_n as_o it_o be_v call_v to_o be_v false_a and_o heretical_a and_o you_o the_o popish_a to_o be_v the_o only_a catholic_a &_o right_n it_o have_v before_o bni_n make_v very_o manifest_a unto_o you_o clean_o contrariwise_o that_o we_o be_v the_o right_n apostolic_a catholic_a &_o most_o ancient_a religion_n &_o that_o you_o come_v in_o afterward_o be_v the_o new_a adulterate_a heretical_a false_a &_o antichristian_a and_o that_o those_o be_v not_o the_o child_n of_o the_o right_n and_o
chief_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o world_n to_o come_v for_o it_o have_v as_o you_o see_v god_n own_o express_a commandment_n bid_v all_o his_o people_n to_o depart_v from_o that_o mystical_a babylon_n popish_a rome_n 18.4_o when_o therefore_o god_n himself_o thus_o speak_v and_o will_v have_v none_o that_o be_v his_o people_n to_o adhere_v to_o such_o a_o mother_n as_o the_o whore_n of_o babylon_n be_v but_o clean_o contrariwise_o will_v have_v they_o to_o depart_v from_o she_o and_o utter_o to_o renounce_v abhor_v and_o detest_v she_o as_o be_v indeed_o the_o mother_n of_o whoredom_n 17.5_o and_o abomination_n of_o the_o earth_n as_o she_o be_v entitle_v be_v it_o not_o good_a reason_n and_o your_o bind_a duty_n to_o give_v ear_n unto_o he_o and_o to_o obey_v his_o voice_n herein_o as_o you_o tender_v your_o own_o salvation_n and_o desire_v to_o be_v his_o people_n it_o appear_v that_o you_o have_v be_v of_o a_o long_a time_n mistake_v as_o touch_v the_o right_a mother-church_n for_o not_o popish_a rome_n but_o jerusalem_n which_o be_v from_o above_o be_v the_o mother_n of_o we_o all_o as_o s._n paul_n express_o witness_v yea_o 4.26_o what_o manner_n of_o mother_n popish_a rome_n be_v i_o trust_v you_o now_o sufficient_o perceive_v be_v no_o long_o therefore_o so_o much_o abuse_v or_o so_o extreme_o delude_v as_o to_o take_v the_o wrong_a mother_n for_o the_o right_n and_o he_o that_o be_v the_o grand_a antichrist_n to_o be_v christ_n vicar_n the_o head_n of_o his_o church_n s._n peter_n successor_n and_o the_o bishop_n that_o can_v err_v in_o matter_n of_o faith_n for_o what_o christian_n charitable_a and_o good_a mind_n do_v not_o grieve_v to_o see_v so_o many_o honourable_a and_o honest-hearted_a man_n to_o be_v so_o far_o carry_v away_o and_o mislead_v to_o their_o own_o perdition_n howbeit_o if_o any_o among_o you_o rest_v not_o satisfy_v herewith_o but_o think_v that_o he_o can_v answer_v this_o book_n and_o will_v take_v upon_o he_o so_o to_o do_v i_o desire_v he_o first_o that_o he_o will_v do_v it_o not_o by_o part_n or_o piecemeal_n but_o whole_o and_o entire_o from_o the_o begin_n of_o it_o to_o the_o end_n second_o i_o desire_v he_o to_o do_v it_o not_o superficial_o or_o sophistical_o but_o substantial_o sound_o and_o satisfactorilie_o if_o he_o can_v three_o as_o i_o will_v have_v he_o to_o do_v it_o in_o love_n and_o charity_n and_o with_o a_o affection_n only_o to_o follow_v god_n truth_n so_o do_v i_o also_o desire_v he_o to_o set_v his_o name_n unto_o it_o as_o i_o have_v do_v here_o to_o this_o but_o if_o none_o among_o you_o can_v make_v any_o solid_a sound_a sufficient_a and_o satisfactory_a answer_n unto_o it_o as_o i_o rest_v assure_v before_o hand_n none_o can_v or_o will_v be_v able_a for_o who_o be_v or_o ever_o will_v be_v able_a to_o answer_n or_o confute_v that_o word_n of_o god_n whereupon_o the_o protestant_n doctrine_n &_o religion_n be_v apparent_o ground_v then_o be_v there_o so_o much_o the_o more_o reason_n for_o you_o all_o to_o yield_v to_o that_o which_o you_o see_v to_o be_v evident_a unanswerable_a and_o irrefutable_a god_n almighty_a if_o it_o be_v his_o will_n open_v all_o your_o eye_n to_o see_v his_o splendent_a and_o invincible_a truth_n in_o his_o sacred_a &_o canonical_a scripture_n contain_v and_o grant_v both_o to_o you_o and_o to_o we_o that_o we_o may_v all_o acknowledge_v profess_v and_o observe_v it_o to_o his_o glory_n the_o discharge_n of_o our_o duty_n and_o our_o own_o everlasting_a comfort_n and_o salvation_n through_o jesus_n christ._n amen_o wisdom_n be_v justify_v of_o all_o her_o child_n luk._n 7.35_o unto_o the_o king_n everlasting_a immortal_a invisible_a unto_o god_n only_o wise_a be_v honour_n and_o glory_n for_o ever_o and_o ever_o amen_o 1._o tim._n 1.17_o finis_fw-la a_o epistle_n write_v by_o the_o reverend_a father_n in_o god_n james_n usher_n bishop_n of_o meath_z concern_v the_o religion_n ancient_o profess_v by_o the_o irish_a and_o scottish_a show_v it_o to_o be_v for_o substance_n the_o same_o with_o that_o which_o at_o this_o day_n be_v by_o public_a authority_n establish_v in_o the_o church_n of_o england_n worthy_a sir_n i_o confess_v i_o somewhat_o incline_v to_o be_v of_o your_o mind_n that_o if_o unto_o the_o authority_n draw_v out_o of_o scripture_n and_o father_n which_o be_v common_a to_o we_o with_o other_o a_o true_a discovery_n be_v add_v of_o that_o religion_n which_o ancient_o be_v profess_v in_o this_o kingdom_n it_o may_v prove_v a_o special_a motive_n to_o induce_v my_o poor_a countryman_n to_o consider_v a_o little_a better_o of_o the_o old_a and_o true_a way_n from_o whence_o they_o have_v hitherto_o be_v misledd_v yet_o on_o the_o one_o side_n that_o say_v in_o the_o gospel_n run_v much_o in_o my_o mind_n 16.31_o if_o they_o hear_v not_o moses_n and_o the_o prophet_n neither_o will_v they_o be_v persuade_v though_o one_o rise_v from_o the_o dead_a and_o on_o the_o other_o that_o heavy_a judgement_n mention_v by_o the_o apostle_n 11._o because_o they_o receive_v not_o the_o love_n of_o the_o truth_n that_o they_o may_v be_v save_v god_n shall_v send_v they_o strong_a delusion_n that_o they_o shall_v believe_v lie_n the_o woeful_a experience_n whereof_o we_o may_v see_v daily_o before_o our_o eye_n in_o this_o poor_a nation_n where_o such_o as_o be_v slow_a of_o heart_n to_o believe_v the_o save_a truth_n of_o god_n deliver_v by_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n do_v with_o all_o greediness_n embrace_v &_o with_o a_o most_o strange_a kind_n of_o credulity_n entertain_v those_o lie_a legend_n wherewith_o their_o monk_n &_o friar_n in_o these_o latter_a day_n have_v pollute_v the_o religion_n and_o life_n of_o our_o ancient_a saint_n i_o do_v not_o deny_v but_o that_o in_o this_o country_n as_o well_o as_o in_o other_o corruption_n do_v creep_v in_o by_o little_a and_o little_a before_o the_o devil_n be_v let_v loose_a to_o procure_v that_o seduction_n which_o prevayl_v so_o general_o in_o these_o last_o time_n but_o as_o far_o as_o i_o can_v collect_v by_o such_o record_n of_o the_o former_a age_n as_o have_v come_v unto_o my_o hand_n either_o manuscript_n or_o print_v the_o religion_n profess_v by_o the_o ancient_a bishop_n priest_n monk_n and_o other_o christian_n in_o this_o land_n be_v for_o substance_n the_o very_a same_o with_o that_o which_o now_o by_o public_a authority_n be_v maintain_v therein_o against_o the_o foreign_a doctrine_n bring_v in_o thither_o in_o late_a time_n by_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n follower_n i_o speak_v of_o the_o more_o substantial_a point_n of_o doctrine_n that_o be_v in_o controversy_n betwixt_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o we_o at_o this_o day_n by_o which_o only_o we_o must_v judge_v whether_o of_o both_o side_n have_v depart_v from_o the_o religion_n of_o our_o ancestor_n not_o of_o matter_n of_o inferior_a note_n much_o less_o of_o ceremony_n and_o such_o other_o thing_n as_o appertain_v to_o the_o discipline_n rather_o than_o to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n and_o whereas_o it_o be_v know_v unto_o the_o learned_a that_o the_o name_n of_o scoti_n in_o those_o elder_a time_n whereof_o we_o treat_v be_v common_a to_o the_o inhabitant_n of_o the_o great_a and_o the_o lesser_a scotland_n for_o so_o heretofore_o they_o have_v be_v distinguish_v that_o be_v to_o say_v of_o ireland_n and_o the_o famous_a colony_n deduce_v from_o thence_o into_o albania_n i_o will_v not_o follow_v the_o evil_a example_n of_o those_o that_o have_v of_o late_o labour_v to_o make_v dissension_n betwixt_o the_o daughter_n and_o the_o mother_n but_o account_n of_o they_o both_o as_o of_o the_o same_o people_n tros_n rutulúsve_fw-la fuat_fw-la nullo_n discrimine_fw-la habebo_fw-la that_o we_o may_v therefore_o fall_v upon_o the_o matter_n in_o hand_n without_o further_a preamble_n two_o excellent_a rule_n do_v s._n paul_n prescribe_v unto_o christian_n for_o their_o direction_n in_o the_o way_n of_o god_n the_o one_o that_o they_o 5.17_o be_v not_o unwise_a but_o understand_v what_o the_o will_n of_o god_n be_v the_o other_o that_o they_o 〈◊〉_d be_v not_o more_o wise_a than_o behove_v to_o be_v wise_a but_o be_v wise_a unto_o sobriety_n and_o that_o we_o may_v know_v the_o limit_n within_o which_o this_o wisdom_n and_o sobriety_n shall_v be_v bound_v he_o elsewhere_o declare_v that_o not_o to_o be_v more_o wise_a than_o be_v fit_v be_v 〈◊〉_d not_o to_o be_v wise_a above_o that_o which_o be_v write_v hereupon_o sedulius_n one_o of_o the_o most_o ancient_a writer_n that_o remain_v of_o this_o country_n birth_n deliver_v this_o for_o the_o meaning_n of_o the_o former_a rule_n 5._o search_v the_o law_n in_o which_o the_o will_n of_o god_n be_v contain_v and_o this_o for_o the_o late_a 12._o he_o will_v be_v more_o wise_a than_o
they_o within_o his_o dominion_n in_o france_n he_o receive_v such_o another_o answer_n from_o they_o as_o ult_n thaddaeus_n in_o the_o ecclesiastical_a history_n be_v say_v to_o have_v give_v unto_o abgarus_n the_o governor_n of_o edessa_n 2._o we_o who_o have_v forsake_v our_o own_o that_o according_a to_o the_o commandment_n of_o the_o gospel_n we_o may_v follow_v the_o lord_n ought_v not_o to_o embrace_v other_o man_n riches_n lest_o peradventure_o we_o shall_v prove_v transgressor_n of_o the_o divine_a commandment_n how_o then_o do_v these_o man_n live_v will_v you_o say_v walafridus_n strabus_n tell_v we_o that_o 6._o some_o of_o they_o wrought_v in_o the_o garden_n other_o dress_v the_o orchard_n gallus_n make_v net_n and_o take_v fish_n wherewith_o he_o not_o only_o relieve_v his_o own_o company_n but_o be_v helpefull_a also_o unto_o stranger_n so_o bede_n report_v of_o cuthbert_n that_o when_o he_o retire_v himself_o unto_o a_o anchoretical_a life_n he_o 28._o first_o indeed_o receive_v a_o little_a bread_n from_o his_o brethren_n to_o feed_v upon_o and_o drink_v out_o of_o his_o own_o well_o but_o afterward_o he_o think_v it_o more_o fit_a to_o live_v by_o the_o work_n of_o his_o own_o hand_n after_o the_o example_n of_o the_o father_n and_o therefore_o entreat_v that_o instrument_n may_v be_v bring_v he_o wherewith_o he_o may_v till_o the_o earth_n and_o corn_n that_o he_o may_v sow_v 17._o quique_fw-la suis_fw-la cupiens_fw-la victum_fw-la conquirere_fw-la palmis_fw-la incultam_fw-la pertentat_fw-la humum_fw-la proscindere_fw-la ferro_fw-la et_fw-la sator_fw-la edomitis_fw-la anni_fw-la spem_fw-la credere_fw-la glebis_fw-la the_o like_a do_v he_o relate_v of_o 19_o furseus_n and_o bonifacius_n of_o 240._o livinus_fw-la and_o theodorus_n campidonensis_n or_o whosoever_o else_o write_v that_o book_n of_o canisij_n gallus_n magnoaldus_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o follower_n of_o columbanus_n that_o they_o get_v their_o live_n by_o the_o labour_n of_o their_o own_o hand_n and_o the_o 3.12_o apostle_n rule_n be_v general_o lay_v down_o for_o all_o monk_n in_o the_o life_n of_o furseus_n fursei_n they_o which_o live_v in_o monastery_n shall_v work_v with_o silence_n and_o eat_v their_o own_o bread_n i_o pass_v by_o a_o like_a sentence_n which_o we_o read_v in_o the_o life_n of_o s._n brendan_n brendani_n a_o monk_n ought_v to_o be_v feed_v and_o clothe_v with_o the_o labour_n of_o his_o own_o hand_n that_o be_v more_o memorable_a which_o other_o do_v write_v of_o the_o same_o brendan_n that_o he_o 25._o govern_v three_o thousand_o monk_n who_o by_o their_o own_o labour_n and_o handiwork_n do_v earn_v their_o live_n such_o be_v the_o monastery_n of_o magio_n found_v in_o this_o country_n by_o bishop_n colman_n for_o the_o entertainment_n of_o the_o english_a where_o they_o 4._o do_v live_v according_a to_o the_o example_n of_o the_o reverend_a father_n as_o bede_n write_v under_o a_o rule_n and_o a●_n canonical_a abbot_n in_o great_a continency_n and_o sincerity_n with_o the_o labour_n of_o their_o own_o hand_n such_o also_o be_v the_o monastery_n of_o mailros_n plant_v by_o bishop_n aidan_n and_o his_o follower_n in_o northumberland_n where_o s._n cuthbert_n have_v his_o education_n who_o affirm_v that_o 22._o the_o life_n of_o such_o monk_n be_v just_o to_o be_v admire_v which_o be_v in_o all_o thing_n subject_a to_o the_o command_n of_o their_o abbot_n and_o order_v all_o the_o time_n of_o their_o watch_n pray_v fast_a and_o work_v according_a to_o his_o direction_n 20._o excubiasque_fw-la famemque_fw-la preces_fw-la manuumque_fw-la laborem_fw-la ad_fw-la votum_fw-la gaudent_fw-la proni_fw-la fraenare_fw-la regentis_fw-la as_o for_o their_o fast_a for_o of_o their_o watch_n and_o pray_v there_o be_v no_o question_n make_v and_o of_o their_o work_n we_o have_v already_o speak_v sufficient_o by_o the_o rule_n of_o columbanus_n they_o be_v 5._o every_o day_n to_o fast_o and_o every_o day_n to_o eat_v that_o by_o this_o mean_n ibid._n the_o enable_v of_o they_o for_o their_o spiritual_a proficiency_n may_v be_v retain_v together_o with_o the_o abstinence_n that_o do_v macerate_v the_o flesh_n he_o will_v therefore_o have_v they_o ibid._n every_o day_n to_o eat_v because_o they_o be_v every_o day_n to_o profit_n and_o because_o ibid._n abstinence_n if_o it_o do_v exceed_v measure_n will_v pro●e_v a_o vice_n and_o not_o a_o virtue_n and_o he_o will_v have_v they_o to_o fast_v every_o day_n too_o that_o be_v not_o to_o eat_v any_o meat_n at_o all_o for_o other_o fast_n be_v not_o know_v in_o those_o day_n until_o evening_n let_v the_o food_n of_o monk_n say_v ibid._n he_o be_v mean_a and_o take_v at_o evening_n fly_v satiety_n and_o excess_n of_o drink_n that_o it_o may_v both_o sustain_v they_o and_o not_o hurt_v they_o this_o be_v the_o daily_a fast_v and_o feed_v of_o they_o that_o live_v according_a to_o columbanus_n his_o rule_n such_o as_o follow_v the_o instruction_n of_o bishop_n 5._o aidan_n observe_v this_o kind_n of_o fast_o on_o wednesday_n &_o friday_n only_a upon_o which_o day_n they_o forbear_v eat_v of_o any_o meat_n until_o the_o nine_o hour_n that_o be_v to_o say_v until_o three_o of_o the_o clock_n in_o the_o afternoon_n according_a unto_o our_o account_n so_o bishop_n cedd_n who_o be_v bring_v up_o at_o lindisfarne_v with_o aidan_n and_o finan_n keep_v a_o strict_a fast_o upon_o a_o special_a occasion_n in_o the_o time_n of_o lent_n do_v 23._o every_o day_n except_o the_o lord_n day_n continue_v his_o fast_n as_o the_o manner_n be_v until_o the_o evening_n and_o then_o also_o do_v eat_v nothing_o but_o a_o small_a pittance_n of_o bread_n &_o one_o egg_n with_o a_o little_a milk_n mingle_v with_o water_n where_o by_o the_o way_n you_o may_v note_v that_o in_o those_o day_n egg_n be_v eat_v in_o lent_n and_o the_o sunday_n except_v from_o fast_v even_o then_o when_o the_o abstinence_n be_v precise_o and_o in_o more_o than_o a_o ordinary_a manner_n observe_v but_o general_o for_o this_o point_n of_o the_o difference_n of_o meal_n it_o be_v well_o note_v by_o claudius_n out_o of_o s._n augustin_n that_o matth._n the_o child_n of_o wisdom_n do_v understand_v that_o neither_o in_o abstayn_v nor_o in_o eat_v be_v there_o any_o virtue_n but_o in_o contentedness_n of_o bear_v the_o want_n and_o temperance_n of_o not_o corrupt_v a_o man_n self_n by_o abundance_n and_o of_o opportune_o take_v or_o not_o take_v those_o thing_n of_o which_o not_o the_o use_n but_o the_o concupiscence_n be_v to_o be_v blame_v and_o in_o the_o life_n of_o furseus_n the_o hypocrisy_n of_o they_o be_v just_o tax_v that_o be_v fursei_n assault_v with_o spiritual_a vice_n do_v yet_o omit_v the_o care_n of_o they_o and_o afflict_v their_o body_n with_o abstinence_n who_o ibid._n abstayn_v from_o meat_n which_o god_n have_v create_v to_o be_v receive_v with_o thanksgiving_n fall_v to_o wicked_a thing_n as_o if_o they_o be_v lawful_a namely_o to_o pride_n covetousness_n envy_n false_a witness_v backbiting_a and_o so_o much_o for_o that_o matter_n now_o concern_v the_o catholic_n church_n our_o doctor_n teach_v with_o s._n gregory_n that_o god_n matth._n have_v a_o vineyard_n to_o wit_n the_o universal_a church_n which_o from_o just_a abel_n until_o the_o last_o of_o the_o elect_a that_o shall_v be_v bear_v in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n as_o many_o saint_n as_o it_o have_v bring_v forth_o so_o many_o branch_n as_o it_o be_v have_v it_o bud_v that_o matt._n the_o congregation_n of_o the_o just_a be_v call_v the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n which_o be_v the_o church_n of_o the_o just_a that_o matth._n the_o son_n of_o the_o church_n be_v all_o such_o as_o from_o the_o begin_n of_o mankind_n until_o now_o have_v attain_a to_o be_v just_a and_o holy_a that_o hieronymo_n what_o be_v say_v of_o the_o body_n may_v be_v say_v also_o of_o the_o member_n and_o that_o in_o this_o respect_n as_o well_o the_o apostle_n and_o all_o believer_n as_o the_o church_n itself_o have_v the_o title_n of_o a_o pillar_n give_v they_o in_o the_o scripture_n that_o eodem_fw-la the_o church_n may_v be_v consider_v two_o manner_n of_o way_n both_o that_o which_o neither_o have_v spot_n nor_o wrinkle_n and_o be_v true_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o that_o which_o be_v gather_v in_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n without_o full_a and_o perfect_a virtue_n which_o notwithstanding_o by_o the_o warrant_n of_o the_o apostle_n may_v have_v the_o name_n of_o the_o church_n give_v unto_o it_o although_o it_o be_v deprave_v with_o error_n that_o 1_o the_o church_n be_v say_v not_o to_o have_v spot_n or_o wrinkle_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o life_n to_o come_v that_o when_o the_o apostle_n say_v in_o a_o great_a house_n there_o be_v not_o only_a vessel_n of_o gold_n etc._n etc._n but_o some_o to_o honour_n and_o some_o to_o dishonour_v 2._o tim._n 2.20_o by_o this_o
find_v no_o other_o excuse_n for_o bishop_n aidan_n herein_o but_o that_o 17._o either_o he_o be_v ignorant_a of_o the_o canonical_a time_n or_o if_o he_o know_v it_o that_o he_o be_v so_o overcome_v with_o the_o authority_n of_o his_o own_o nation_n that_o he_o do_v not_o follow_v it_o that_o he_o do_v it_o 3._o after_o the_o manner_n of_o his_o own_o nation_n and_o that_o 25._o he_o can_v not_o keep_v easter_n contrary_a to_o the_o custom_n of_o they_o which_o have_v send_v he_o his_o successor_n finan_n ibid._n contend_v more_o fierce_o in_o the_o business_n with_o ronan_n his_o countryman_n and_o declare_v himself_o a_o open_a adversary_n to_o the_o roman_a rite_n colman_n that_o succeed_v he_o do_v tread_v just_a in_o his_o step_n so_o far_o that_o be_v put_v down_o in_o the_o synod_n of_o streanshal_n yet_o for_o fear_n of_o his_o country_n as_o before_o we_o have_v hear_v out_o of_o the_o ancient_a writer_n of_o the_o life_n of_o wilfride_n he_o refuse_v to_o conform_v himself_o and_o choose_v rather_o to_o forgo_v his_o archbishopric_n then_o to_o submit_v himself_o unto_o the_o roman_a law_n colmanusque_fw-la svas_fw-la inglorius_fw-la abjicit_fw-la arces_fw-la malens_fw-la ausonias_fw-la victui_fw-la dissolvere_fw-la leges_fw-la say_v fridegodus_fw-la neither_o do_v he_o go_v away_o alone_o but_o 4._o take_v with_o he_o all_o his_o countryman_n that_o he_o have_v gather_v together_o in_o lindisfarne_n or_o holy_a island_n the_o scottish_a monk_n also_o that_o be_v at_o rippon_n in_o yorkshire_n hrippun_a make_v choice_n rather_o to_o quit_v their_o place_n then_o to_o admit_v the_o observation_n of_o easter_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o rite_n according_a to_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o so_o do_v the_o matter_n rest_n among_o the_o irish_a about_o forty_o year_n after_o that_o until_o their_o own_o countryman_n 22._o adamnanus_n persuade_v most_o of_o they_o to_o yield_v to_o the_o custom_n receive_v herein_o by_o all_o the_o church_n abroad_o the_o pict_n do_v the_o like_a not_o long_o after_o under_o king_n naitan_n who_o 22._o by_o his_o regal_a authority_n command_v easter_n to_o be_v observe_v throughout_o all_o his_o province_n according_a to_o the_o cycle_n of_o xix_o year_n abolish_n the_o erroneous_a period_n of_o lxxxiiii_o year_n which_o before_o they_o use_v and_o cause_v all_o priest_n and_o monk_n to_o be_v shear_v croune-wise_a after_o the_o roman_a manner_n the_o monk_n also_o of_o the_o island_n of_o hylas_n or_o y-columkille_a 23._o by_o the_o persuasion_n of_o ecgbert_n a_o english_a priest_n that_o have_v be_v breed_v in_o ireland_n in_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n dccxvi_o forsake_v the_o observation_n of_o easter_n &_o the_o tonsure_v which_o they_o have_v receive_v from_o columkille_n a_o hundred_o and_o fifty_o year_n before_o and_o follow_v the_o roman_a rite_n about_o lxxx_o year_n after_o the_o time_n of_o pope_n honorius_n and_o the_o send_n of_o bishop_n aidan_n from_o thence_o into_o england_n the_o briton_n in_o the_o time_n of_o 24._o bede_n retain_v still_o their_o old_a usage_n until_o 808._o elbodus_n who_o be_v the_o chief_a bishop_n of_o north-wales_n and_o die_v in_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n dcccix_o bring_v in_o the_o roman_a observation_n of_o easter_n which_o be_v the_o cause_n why_o discipulus_fw-la his_o disciple_n nennius_n design_v the_o time_n wherein_o he_o write_v his_o history_n by_o the_o character_n of_o the_o id_fw-la xix_o year_n cycle_n and_o not_o of_o the_o other_o of_o lxxxiv_o but_o howsoever_o north-wales_n do_v it_o be_v very_o probable_a that_o west-wales_n which_o of_o all_o the_o other_o part_n be_v most_o eager_o bend_v against_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n stand_v out_o yet_o long_o for_o we_o find_v in_o the_o greek_a writer_n of_o the_o life_n of_o chrysostome_n that_o certain_a clergy_n man_n which_o dwell_v in_o the_o isle_n of_o the_o ocean_n repair_v from_o the_o utmost_a border_n of_o the_o habitable_a world_n unto_o constantinople_n in_o the_o day_n of_o methodius_n who_o be_v patriarch_n there_o from_o the_o year_n dcccxlii_o to_o the_o year_n dcccxlvii_o to_o inquire_v of_o 966.5_o certain_a ecclesiastical_a tradition_n and_o the_o perfect_a and_o exact_a computation_n of_o easter_n whereby_o it_o appear_v that_o these_o question_n be_v keep_v still_o a_o foot_n in_o these_o land_n and_o that_o the_o resolution_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n be_v seek_v for_o from_o hence_o as_o well_o as_o the_o determination_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n who_o be_v now_o make_v the_o only_a oracle_n of_o the_o world_n neither_o be_v it_o here_o to_o be_v omit_v that_o whatsoever_o broil_n do_v pass_v betwixt_o our_o irish_a that_o be_v not_o subject_a to_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n and_o those_o other_o that_o be_v of_o the_o roman_a communion_n in_o the_o succeed_a age_n they_o of_o the_o one_o side_n be_v esteem_v to_o be_v saint_n as_o well_o as_o they_o of_o the_o other_o aidan_n for_o example_n and_o finan_n who_o be_v count_v ringleader_n of_o the_o quartadeciman_n party_n as_o well_o as_o wilfride_n and_o cuthbert_n who_o be_v so_o violent_a against_o it_o yet_o now_o a_o day_n man_n be_v make_v to_o believe_v that_o out_o of_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n nothing_o but_o hell_n can_v be_v look_v for_o and_o that_o subjection_n to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n as_o to_o the_o visible_a head_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n be_v require_v as_o a_o matter_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n which_o if_o it_o may_v go_v currant_n for_o good_a divinity_n the_o case_n be_v like_a to_o go_v hard_a not_o only_o with_o the_o 2._o twelve_o hundred_o british_a monk_n of_o bangor_n who_o be_v martyr_v in_o one_o day_n by_o edelfride_n king_n of_o northumberland_n who_o our_o annal_n style_v by_o the_o name_n of_o ms._n the_o saint_n but_o also_o with_o s._n aidan_n and_o s._n finan_n who_o deserve_v to_o be_v honour_v by_o the_o english_a nation_n with_o as_o venerable_a a_o remembrance_n as_o i_o do_v not_o say_v wilfride_n and_o cuthbert_n but_o austin_n the_o monk_n and_o his_o follower_n for_o by_o the_o ministry_n of_o 6._o aidan_n be_v the_o kingdom_n of_o northumberland_n recover_v from_o paganism_n whereunto_o belong_v then_o beside_o the_o shire_n of_o northumberland_n and_o the_o land_n beyond_o it_o unto_o edenborrow_n frith_n cumberland_n also_o and_o westmoreland_n lancashire_n yorkshire_n and_o the_o bishopric_n of_o durham_n and_o by_o the_o mean_n of_o 21.22.24_o finan_n not_o only_a essex_n and_o middlesex_n regain_v but_o also_o the_o large_a kingdom_n of_o mercia_n convert_v first_o unto_o christianity_n which_o comprehend_v under_o it_o glocestershire_n herefordshire_n worcestershire_n warwickshire_n leicestershire_n rutlandshire_n northamptonshire_n lincolnshire_n huntingtonshire_n bedfordshire_n buckinghamshire_n oxfordshire_n staffordshire_n darbyshire_n shropshire_n nottinghamshire_n chesshire_n and_o half_a hertfordshire_n the_o scottish_a that_o profess_v no_o subjection_n to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v they_o that_o send_v preacher_n for_o the_o conversion_n of_o these_o country_n and_o ordain_v bishop_n to_o govern_v they_o namely_o 3.5.17.25.26_o aidan_n finan_n and_o colman_n successive_o for_o the_o kingdom_n of_o northumberland_n 22.25_o for_o the_o eastsaxons_a cedd_a brother_n to_o ceadda_n the_o bishop_n of_o york_n before_o mention_v 21.24_o for_o the_o middle-angle_n and_o the_o mercian_n diuma_n for_o ●1_n the_o paucity_n of_o priest_n say_v bede_n constrain_v one_o bishop_n to_o be_v appoint_v over_o two_o people_n and_o after_o he_o cellach_n and_o trumhere_o and_o these_o with_o their_o follower_n notwithstanding_o their_o division_n from_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n be_v for_o 3.4.5.17.26_o their_o extraordinary_a sanctity_n of_o life_n and_o painfulness_n in_o preach_v the_o gospel_n wherein_o they_o go_v far_o beyond_o those_o of_o the_o other_o side_n that_o afterward_o thrust_v they_o out_o and_o enter_v in_o upon_o their_o labour_n exceed_o reverence_v by_o all_o that_o know_v they_o aidan_n especial_o who_o 25._o although_o he_o can_v not_o keep_v easter_n say_v bede_n contrary_a to_o the_o manner_n of_o they_o which_o have_v send_v he_o yet_o he_o be_v careful_a diligent_o to_o perform_v the_o work_n of_o faith_n and_o godliness_n and_o love_n according_a to_o the_o manner_n use_v by_o all_o holy_a man_n whereupon_o he_o be_v worthy_o belove_v of_o all_o even_o of_o they_o also_o who_o think_v otherwise_o of_o easter_n than_o he_o do_v and_o be_v have_v in_o reverence_n not_o only_o by_o they_o that_o be_v of_o mean_a rank_n but_o also_o by_o the_o bishop_n themselves_o honorius_n of_o canterbury_n and_o felix_n of_o the_o east-angle_n neither_o do_v honorius_n and_o felix_n any_o other_o way_n carry_v themselves_o herein_o than_o their_o predecessor_n laurentius_n mellitus_n and_o justus_n have_v do_v before_o they_o who_o write_v unto_o the_o bishop_n of_o ireland_n that_o
dissent_v from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n in_o the_o celebration_n of_o easter_n and_o many_o other_o thing_n make_v no_o scruple_n to_o prefix_v this_o love_a &_o respectful_a superscription_n to_o their_o letter_n 4._o to_o our_o lord_n and_o most_o dear_a brethren_n the_o bishop_n or_o abbot_n throughout_o all_o scotland_n laurentius_n mellitus_n and_o justus_n bishop_n the_o servant_n of_o the_o servant_n of_o god_n for_o howsoever_o ireland_n at_o that_o time_n 1._o receive_v not_o the_o same_o law_n wherewith_o other_o nation_n be_v govern_v yet_o it_o so_o flourish_v in_o the_o vigour_n of_o christian_a doctrine_n as_o abbot_n jonas_n testify_v that_o it_o exceed_v the_o faith_n of_o all_o the_o neighbour_n nation_n &_o in_o that_o respect_n be_v general_o have_v in_o honour_n by_o they_o it_o now_o remain_v that_o in_o the_o last_o place_n we_o shall_v consider_v the_o pope_n power_n in_o dispose_v the_o temporal_a state_n of_o this_o kingdom_n which_o either_o direct_o or_o indirect_o by_o hook_n or_o by_o crook_n this_o grand_a usurper_n will_v draw_v unto_o himself_o first_o therefore_o cardinal_n allen_n will_v have_v we_o to_o know_v that_o 140._o the_o sea_n apostolic_a have_v a_o old_a claim_n unto_o the_o sovereignty_n of_o the_o country_n of_o ireland_n and_o that_o before_o the_o covenant_n pass_v between_o king_n john_n and_o the_o same_o sea_n which_o challenge_v say_v he_o princess_n common_o yield_v not_o up_o by_o what_o ground_n so_o ever_o they_o come_v what_o prince_n use_v to_o yield_v or_o not_o yield_v i_o leave_v to_o the_o scan_n of_o those_o unto_o who_o prince_n matter_n do_v belong_v for_o the_o cardinal_n prince_n i_o dare_v be_v bold_a to_o say_v that_o if_o it_o be_v not_o his_o use_n to_o play_v fast_o and_o loose_a with_o other_o prince_n the_o matter_n be_v not_o now_o to_o do_v whatsoever_o right_o he_o can_v pretend_v to_o the_o temporal_a state_n of_o ireland_n he_o have_v transfer_v it_o more_o than_o once_o unto_o the_o king_n of_o england_n and_o when_o the_o ground_n of_o his_o claim_n shall_v be_v look_v into_o it_o will_v be_v find_v so_o frivolous_a and_o so_o ridiculous_a that_o we_o need_v not_o care_v three_o chip_n whether_o he_o yield_v it_o up_o or_o keep_v it_o to_o himself_o for_o whatsoever_o become_v of_o his_o idle_a challenge_n the_o crown_n of_o england_n have_v otherwise_o obtain_v a_o undoubted_a right_n unto_o the_o soveraintie_n of_o this_o country_n partly_o by_o conquest_n prosecute_v at_o first_o upon_o occasion_n of_o a_o sociall_n war_n part_o by_o the_o several_a submission_n of_o the_o chieftain_n of_o the_o land_n make_v afterward_o for_o 7._o whereas_o it_o be_v free_a for_o all_o man_n although_o they_o have_v be_v former_o quit_v from_o all_o subjection_n to_o renounce_v their_o own_o right_n yet_o now_o in_o these_o our_o day_n say_v giraldus_n cambrensis_fw-la in_o his_o history_n of_o the_o conquest_n of_o ireland_n all_o the_o prince_n of_o ireland_n do_v voluntary_o submit_v and_o bind_v themselves_o with_o firm_a bond_n of_o faith_n and_o oath_n unto_o henry_n the_o second_o king_n of_o england_n the_o like_a may_v be_v say_v of_o the_o general_a submission_n make_v in_o the_o day_n of_o king_n richard_n the_o second_o and_o king_n henry_n the_o eight_o to_o speak_v nothing_o of_o the_o prescription_n of_o diverse_a hundred_o of_o year_n possession_n which_o be_v the_o plea_n that_o 11.26_o jephte_n use_v to_o the_o ammonite_n and_o be_v indeed_o the_o best_a evidence_n that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n own_o fine_a proctor_n do_v produce_v for_o their_o master_n right_a to_o rome_n itself_o for_o the_o pope_n direct_a dominion_n over_o ireland_n two_o title_n be_v bring_v forth_o beside_o those_o covenant_n of_o king_n john_n mention_v by_o allen_n which_o he_o that_o have_v any_o understanding_n in_o our_o state_n know_v to_o be_v clear_o void_a and_o worth_a nothing_o the_o one_o be_v take_v from_o a_o special_a grant_n suppose_v to_o be_v make_v by_o the_o inhabitant_n of_o the_o country_n at_o the_o time_n of_o their_o first_o conversion_n unto_o christianity_n the_o other_o from_o a_o right_n which_o 7._o the_o pope_n challenge_v unto_o himself_o over_o all_o land_n in_o general_n the_o former_a of_o these_o be_v devise_v of_o late_a by_o a_o italian_a in_o the_o reign_n of_o king_n henry_n the_o eight_o the_o late_a be_v find_v out_o in_o the_o day_n of_o king_n henry_n the_o second_o before_o who_o time_n not_o one_o footsteppe_n do_v appear_v in_o all_o antiquity_n of_o any_o claim_n that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n shall_v make_v to_o the_o dominion_n of_o ireland_n no_o not_o in_o the_o pope_n own_o record_n which_o have_v be_v curious_o search_v by_o nicolaus_n arragonius_n and_o other_o minister_n of_o he_o who_o have_v purposely_o write_v of_o the_o particular_n of_o his_o temporal_a estate_n the_o italian_a of_o who_o i_o speak_v be_v polydore_n vergil_n he_o that_o compose_v the_o book_n de_fw-fr inventoribus_fw-la rerum_fw-la of_o the_o first_o inventor_n of_o thing_n among_o who_o he_o himself_o may_v challenge_v a_o place_n for_o this_o invention_n if_o the_o inventor_n of_o lie_n be_v admit_v to_o have_v any_o room_n in_o that_o company_n this_o man_n be_v send_v over_o by_o the_o pope_n into_o england_n ●_o for_o the_o collect_v of_o his_o peter-pence_n undertake_v the_o write_n of_o the_o history_n of_o that_o nation_n wherein_o he_o forgatt_v not_o by_o the_o way_n to_o do_v the_o best_a service_n he_o can_v to_o his_o lord_n that_o have_v employ_v he_o thither_o there_o he_o tell_v a_o idle_a tale_n how_o the_o irish_a be_v move_v to_o accept_v henry_n the_o second_o for_o their_o king_n histor_n do_v deny_v that_o this_o can_v be_v do_v otherwise_o then_o by_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n authority_n because_o forsooth_o that_o from_o the_o very_a beginning_n after_o they_o have_v accept_v christian_a religion_n they_o have_v yield_v themselves_o and_o all_o that_o they_o have_v into_o his_o power_n and_o they_o do_v constant_o affirm_v say_v this_o fable_a that_o they_o have_v no_o other_o lord_n beside_o the_o pope_n of_o which_o also_o they_o yet_o do_v brag_v the_o italian_a be_v follow_v herein_o by_o two_o englishman_n that_o wish_v the_o pope_n advancement_n as_o much_o as_o he_o edmund_n campian_n and_o nicholas_n sanders_n the_o one_o whereof_o write_v that_o 1._o immediate_o after_o christianity_n plant_v here_o the_o whole_a island_n with_o one_o consent_n give_v themselves_o no●_n only_a into_o the_o spiritual_a but_o also_o into_o the_o temporal_a jurisdiction_n of_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n the_o other_o in_o polydore_v own_o word_n though_o he_o name_v he_o not_o that_o 1542._o the_o irish_a from_o the_o beginning_n present_o after_o they_o have_v receive_v christian_a religion_n give_v up_o themselves_o and_o all_o that_o they_o have_v into_o the_o power_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o that_o until_o the_o time_n of_o king_n henry_n the_o second_o they_o do_v acknowledge_v no_o other_o supreme_a prince_n of_o ireland_n beside_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n alone_o for_o confutation_n of_o which_o dream_n we_o need_v not_o have_v recourse_n to_o our_o own_o chronicle_n the_o bull_n of_o adrian_n the_o four_o wherein_o he_o give_v liberty_n to_o king_n henry_n the_o second_o to_o enter_v upon_o ireland_n sufficient_o discover_v the_o vanity_n thereof_o for_o he_o there_o show_v what_o right_a the_o church_n of_o rome_n pretend_v unto_o ireland_n make_v no_o mention_n at_o all_o of_o this_o which_o have_v be_v the_o fair_a and_o clear_a title_n that_o can_v be_v allege_v if_o any_o such_o have_v be_v then_o existent_a in_o rerum_fw-la natura_fw-la but_o be_v fain_o to_o fly_v unto_o a_o far_o fetch_v interest_n which_o he_o say_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v unto_o all_o christian_a land_n reg_fw-la true_o say_v he_o to_o the_o king_n there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o that_o all_o land_n unto_o which_o christ_n the_o sun_n of_o righteousness_n have_v shine_v and_o which_o have_v receive_v the_o instruction_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n do_v pertain_v to_o the_o right_n of_o saint_n peter_n and_o the_o holy_a church_n of_o rome_n which_o your_o nobleness_n also_o do_v acknowledge_v if_o you_o will_v further_o understand_v the_o ground_n of_o this_o strange_a claim_n whereby_o all_o christian_a land_n at_o a_o clap_n be_v challenge_v to_o be_v parcel_n of_o s._n peter_n patrimony_n you_o shall_v have_v it_o from_o johannes_n sarisburiensis_n who_o be_v most_o inward_a with_o pope_n adrian_n and_o obtain_v from_o he_o this_o very_a grant_n whereof_o now_o we_o be_v speak_v 42._o at_o my_o request_n say_v he_o he_o grant_v ireland_n to_o the_o illustrious_a king_n of_o england_n henry_n the_o second_o and_o give_v it_o to_o be_v possess_v by_o right_a of_o inheritance_n as_o his_o own_o
letter_n do_v testify_v unto_o this_o day_n for_o all_o land_n of_o ancient_a right_n be_v say_v to_o belong_v to_o the_o church_n of_o rom●_n by_o the_o donation_n of_o constantine_n who_o found_v and_o endow_v the_o same_o but_o will_v you_o see_v what_o a_o goodly_a title_n here_o be_v in_o the_o mean_a time_n first_o the_o donation_n of_o constantine_n have_v be_v long_o since_o discover_v to_o be_v a_o notorious_a forgery_n and_o be_v reject_v by_o all_o man_n of_o judgement_n as_o a_o senseless_a fiction_n second_o in_o the_o whole_a context_n of_o this_o forge_a donation_n i_o find_v mention_n make_v of_o land_n in_o one_o place_n only_o constantin_n where_o no_o more_o power_n be_v give_v to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n over_o they_o then_o in_o general_a over_o the_o whole_a continent_n by_o east_n and_o by_o west_n by_o north_n and_o by_o south_n and_o in_o particular_a over_o judaea_n graecia_n asia_n thracia_n and_o aphrica_n which_o use_v not_o to_o pass_v in_o the_o account_n of_o s._n peter_n temporal_a patrimony_n three_o it_o do_v not_o appear_v that_o constantine_n himself_o have_v any_o interest_n in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o ireland_n how_o then_o can_v he_o confer_v it_o upon_o another_o some_o word_n there_o be_v in_o a_o oration_n of_o constant._n eumenius_n the_o rhetorician_n by_o which_o peradventure_o it_o may_v be_v collect_v that_o his_o father_n constantius_n bear_v some_o stroke_n here_o but_o that_o the_o island_n be_v ever_o possess_v by_o the_o roman_n or_o account_v a_o parcel_n of_o the_o empire_n can_v be_v prove_v by_o any_o sufficient_a testimony_n of_o antiquity_n four_o the_o late_a writer_n that_o be_v of_o another_o mind_n as_o pomponius_n laetus_n cuspinian_n &_o other_o do_v yet_o affirm_v withal_o cosmograph_n that_o in_o the_o division_n of_o the_o empire_n after_o constantine_n death_n ireland_n be_v assign_v unto_o constantinus_n the_o elder_a son_n which_o will_v hardly_o stand_v with_o this_o donation_n of_o the_o land_n suppose_v to_o be_v former_o make_v unto_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o his_o successor_n pope_n adrian_n therefore_o and_o john_n of_o salisbury_n his_o solicitor_n have_v need_n seek_v some_o better_a warrant_n for_o the_o title_n of_o ireland_n than_o the_o donation_n of_o constantine_n john_n harding_n in_o his_o chronicle_n say_v that_o the_o king_n of_o england_n have_v right_a 241._o to_o ireland_n also_o by_o king_n henry_n le_fw-fr fitz_fw-fr of_o maude_n daughter_n of_o first_o king_n henry_n that_o conquer_v it_o for_o their_o great_a heresy_n which_o in_o another_o place_n he_o express_v more_o at_o large_a in_o this_o manner_n 1st_a the_o king_n henry_n then_o conquer_v all_o ireland_n by_o papal_a doom_n there_o of_o his_o royaltee_n the_o profyte_n and_o revenue_n of_o the_o land_n the_o domination_n and_o the_o soverayntee_n for_o error_n which_o again_o the_o spiritualtee_n they_o hold_v full_a long_o and_o will_v not_o be_v correct_v of_o heresye_n with_o which_o they_o be_v infect_v philip_n osullevan_n on_o the_o other_o side_n do_v not_o only_o deny_v 7._o that_o ireland_n be_v infect_v with_o any_o heresy_n but_o will_v also_o have_v we_o believe_v 3._o that_o the_o pope_n never_o intend_v to_o confer_v the_o lordship_n of_o ireland_n upon_o the_o king_n of_o england_n for_o where_o it_o be_v say_v in_o pope_n adrians_n bull_n iv._o let_v the_o people_n of_o that_o land_n receive_v thou_o and_o reverence_v thou_o as_o a_o lord_n the_o meaning_n thereof_o be_v say_v this_o glozer_n mangine_n let_v they_o reverence_v thou_o as_o a_o prince_n worthy_a of_o great_a honour_n not_o as_o lord_n of_o ireland_n but_o as_o a_o deputy_n appoint_v for_o the_o collect_v of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a tribute_n it_o be_v true_a indeed_o that_o king_n henry_n the_o second_o to_o the_o end_n he_o may_v the_o more_o easy_o obtain_v the_o pope_n good_a will_n for_o his_o enter_v upon_o ireland_n do_v voluntary_o offer_v unto_o he_o the_o payment_n of_o a_o yearly_a pension_n of_o one_o penny_n out_o of_o every_o house_n in_o the_o country_n which_o for_o aught_o that_o i_o can_v learn_v be_v the_o first_o ecclesiastical_a tribute_n that_o ever_o come_v unto_o the_o pope_n coffer_n out_o of_o ireland_n but_o that_o king_n henry_n get_v nothing_o else_o by_o the_o bargain_n but_o the_o bare_a office_n of_o collect_v the_o pope_n smoke-silver_n for_o so_o we_o call_v it_o here_o when_o we_o pay_v it_o be_v so_o dull_a a_o conceit_n that_o i_o do_v somewhat_o wonder_v how_o osullevan_n himself_o can_v be_v such_o a_o blockhead_n as_o not_o to_o discern_v the_o senselessness_n of_o it_o what_o the_o king_n seek_v for_o and_o obtain_v be_v sufficient_o declare_v by_o they_o that_o write_v the_o history_n of_o his_o reign_n 1155._o in_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n mclu._n the_o first_o bull_n be_v send_v unto_o he_o by_o pope_n adrian_n the_o sum_n whereof_o be_v thus_o lay_v down_o in_o a_o second_o bull_n direct_v unto_o he_o by_o alexander_n the_o three_o the_o immediate_a successor_n of_o the_o other_o annexis_fw-la follow_v the_o step_n of_o reverend_a pope_n adrian_n and_o attend_v the_o fruit_n of_o your_o desire_n we_o ratify_v and_o confirm_v his_o grant_n concern_v the_o dominion_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o ireland_n confer_v upon_o you_o reserve_v unto_o s._n peter_n and_o the_o holy_a church_n of_o rome_n as_o in_o england_n so_o in_o ireland_n the_o yearly_a pension_n of_o one_o penny_n out_o of_o every_o house_n in_o this_o sort_n do_v pope_n adrian_n as_o much_o as_o lay_v in_o he_o give_v ireland_n unto_o king_n henry_n haereditario_fw-la jure_fw-la possidendam_fw-la to_o be_v possess_v by_o right_a of_o inheritance_n and_o withal_o 6._o send_v unto_o he_o a_o ring_n of_o gold_n set_v with_o a_o fair_a emerald_n for_o his_o investiture_n in_o the_o right_a thereof_o as_o johannes_n sarisburiensis_n who_o be_v the_o principal_a agent_n betwixt_o they_o both_o in_o this_o business_n do_v express_o testify_v after_o this_o in_o the_o year_n mclxxi_o the_o king_n himself_o come_v hither_o in_o person_n where_o the_o archbishop_n and_o bishop_n of_o ireland_n ms._n receive_v he_o for_o their_o king_n and_o lord_n the_o king_n say_v john_n brampton_n ibid._n receive_v letter_n from_o every_o archbishop_n and_o bishop_n with_o their_o seal_n hang_v upon_o they_o in_o the_o manner_n of_o a_o indenture_n confirm_v the_o kingdom_n of_o ireland_n unto_o he_o and_o his_o heir_n and_o bear_v witness_n that_o they_o in_o ireland_n have_v ordain_v he_o and_o his_o heir_n to_o be_v their_o king_n and_o lord_n for_o ever_o at_o waterford_n say_v roger_n hoveden_n 1171._o all_o the_o archbishop_n bishop_n &_o abbot_n of_o ireland_n come_v unto_o the_o king_n of_o england_n and_o receive_v he_o for_o king_n and_o lord_n of_o ireland_n swear_v fealty_n to_o he_o and_o to_o his_o heir_n and_o power_n to_o reign_v over_o they_o for_o ever_o and_o hereof_o they_o give_v he_o their_o instrument_n the_o king_n also_o and_o prince_n of_o ireland_n by_o the_o example_n of_o the_o clergy_n do_v in_o like_a manner_n receive_v henry_n king_n of_o england_n for_o lord_n and_o king_n of_o ireland_n and_o become_v his_o man_n or_o do_v he_o homage_n and_o swear_v fealty_n to_o he_o and_o his_o heir_n against_o all_o man_n these_o thing_n be_v present_o after_o confirm_v in_o the_o national_n synod_n hold_v at_o casshell_n the_o act_n whereof_o in_o giraldus_n cambrensis_fw-la be_v thus_o conclude_v 34._o for_o it_o be_v fit_a and_o most_o meet_a that_o as_o ireland_n by_o god_n appointment_n have_v get_v a_o lord_n and_o a_o king_n from_o england_n so_o also_o they_o shall_v from_o thence_o receive_v a_o better_a form_n of_o live_v king_n henry_n also_o at_o the_o same_o time_n hoveden_n send_v a_o transcript_n of_o the_o instrument_n of_o all_o the_o archbishop_n and_o bishop_n of_o ireland_n unto_o pope_n alexander_n who_o by_o his_o apostolical_a authority_n for_o so_o be_v it_o in_o those_o day_n of_o darkness_n esteem_v to_o be_v do_v confirm_v the_o kingdom_n of_o ireland_n unto_o he_o and_o his_o heir_n according_a to_o the_o form_n of_o the_o instrument_n of_o the_o archbishop_n and_o bishop_n of_o ireland_n brampton_n and_o make_v they_o king_n thereof_o for_o ever_o the_o king_n also_o 1177._o obtain_v further_o from_o pope_n alexander_n that_o it_o may_v be_v lawful_a for_o he_o to_o make_v which_o of_o his_o son_n he_o please_v king_n of_o ireland_n and_o to_o crown_v he_o according_o and_o to_o subdue_v the_o king_n and_o great_a one_o of_o that_o land_n which_o will_v not_o subject_v themselves_o unto_o he_o whereupon_o in_o a_o grand_a council_n hold_v at_o oxford_n in_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n mclxxvii_o historic_n before_o the_o bishop_n and_o peer_n of_o the_o kingdom_n he_o constitute_v his_o son_n john_n king_n of_o ireland_n 1177._o according_a to_o
that_o grant_n and_o confirmation_n of_o pope_n alexander_n and_o to_o make_v the_o matter_n yet_o more_o sure_a in_o the_o year_n mclxxxvi_o he_o obtain_v a_o new_a licence_n from_o pope_n vrban_n the_o three_o 1185._o that_o one_o of_o his_o son_n who_o he_o himself_o will_v shall_v be_v crown_v for_o the_o kingdom_n of_o ireland_n and_o this_o the_o pope_n do_v not_o only_o confirm_v by_o his_o bull_n but_o also_o the_o year_n follow_v purposely_o send_v over_o cardinal_n octavian_n and_o hugo_n de_fw-fr nunant_n or_o novant_n 1187._o his_o legate_n into_o ireland_n to_o crown_n john_n the_o king_n son_n there_o by_o all_o this_o we_o may_v see_v how_o far_o king_n henry_n the_o second_o proceed_v in_o this_o business_n which_o i_o do_v not_o so_o much_o note_n to_o convince_v the_o stoliditie_n of_o osullevan_n who_o will_v fain_o persuade_v fool_n that_o he_o be_v prefer_v only_o to_o be_v collector_n of_o the_o pope_n peter-p●nce_a as_o to_o show_v that_o ireland_n at_o that_o time_n be_v esteem_v a_o kingdom_n and_o the_o king_n of_o england_n account_v no_o less_o than_o king_n thereof_o and_o therefore_o paul_n the_o four_o need_v not_o make_v all_o that_o noise_n and_o trouble_v hiberniae_fw-la the_o whole_a court_n of_o heaven_n with_o the_o matter_n when_o in_o the_o year_n mdlv_o he_o take_v upon_o he_o by_o his_o apostolical_a authority_n such_o i_o be_o sure_a as_o none_o of_o the_o apostle_n of_o christ_n do_v ever_o assume_v unto_o themselves_o to_o erect_v ireland_n unto_o the_o title_n and_o dignity_n of_o a_o kingdom_n whereas_o he_o may_v have_v find_v even_o in_o his_o own_o roman_a provincial_n that_o ireland_n be_v reckon_v among_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christendom_n before_o he_o be_v bear_v insomuch_o that_o in_o the_o year_n mccccxvii_n when_o the_o legate_n of_o the_o king_n of_o england_n and_o the_o french_a king_n ambassador_n fall_v at_o variance_n in_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n for_o precedency_n the_o english_a orator_n among_o other_o argument_n allege_v this_o also_o for_o themselves_o jacobaeâ_fw-la it_o be_v well_o know_v that_o according_a to_o albertus_n magnus_n and_o bartholomaeus_n in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr proprietatibus_fw-la rerum_fw-la the_o whole_a world_n be_v divide_v into_o three_o part_n to_o wit_n asia_n africa_n and_o europe_n europe_n be_v divide_v into_o four_o kingdom_n namely_o the_o roman_a for_o the_o first_o the_o constantinopolitan_a for_o the_o second_o the_o three_o the_o kingdom_n of_o ireland_n which_o be_v now_o translate_v unto_o the_o english_a and_o the_o four_o the_o kingdom_n of_o spain_n whereby_o it_o appear_v that_o the_o king_n of_o england_n and_o his_o kingdom_n be_v of_o the_o more_o eminent_a ancient_a king_n and_o kingdom_n of_o all_o europe_n which_o prerogative_n the_o kingdom_n of_o france_n be_v not_o say_v to_o obtain_v and_o this_o have_v i_o here_o insert_v the_o more_o willing_o because_o it_o make_v something_o for_o the_o honour_n of_o my_o country_n to_o which_o i_o confess_v i_o be_o very_o much_o devote_v and_o in_o the_o print_a act_n of_o the_o council_n it_o be_v not_o common_o to_o be_v have_v but_o now_o come_v forth_o osullevan_n again_o and_o like_o a_o little_a fury_n fly_v upon_o 1621._o the_o english-irish_a priest_n of_o his_o own_o religion_n which_o in_o the_o late_a rebellion_n of_o the_o earl_n of_o tirone_n do_v not_o deny_v that_o hellish_a doctrine_n fetch_v out_o of_o hell_n for_o the_o destruction_n of_o catholic_n that_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o catholic_n to_o bear_v arm_n and_o fight_v for_o heretic_n against_o catholic_n and_o their_o country_n or_o rather_o if_o you_o will_v have_v it_o in_o plain_a term_n that_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o they_o of_o the_o romish_a religion_n to_o bear_v arm_n and_o fight_v for_o their_o sovereign_n and_o fellow_n subject_n that_o be_v of_o another_o profession_n against_o those_o of_o their_o own_o religion_n that_o traitorous_o rebel_v against_o their_o prince_n and_o country_n and_o to_o show_v 204._o how_o mad_a and_o how_o venomous_a a_o doctrine_n they_o do_v bring_v these_o be_v the_o caitiff_n own_o term_n that_o exhort_v the_o laity_n to_o follow_v the_o queen_n side_n he_o set_v down_o the_o censure_n of_o the_o doctor_n of_o the_o university_n of_o salamanca_n and_o vallodilid_n publish_v in_o the_o year_n mdciii_o for_o the_o justification_n of_o that_o rebellion_n and_o the_o declaration_n of_o pope_n clement_n the_o eight_o letter_n touch_v the_o same_o wherein_o he_o signify_v that_o bello_fw-la the_o english_a ought_v to_o be_v set_v upon_o no_o less_o than_o the_o turk_n and_o impart_v the_o same_o favour_n unto_o such_o as_o set_v upon_o they_o that_o he_o do_v unto_o such_o as_o fight_v against_o the_o turk_n such_o wholesome_a direction_n do_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n give_v unto_o those_o that_o will_v be_v rule_v by_o he_o far_o different_a i_o wiss_v from_o that_o holy_a doctrine_n wherewith_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v at_o first_o season_v by_o the_o apostle_n 13.1_o let_v every_o soul_n be_v subject_a unto_o the_o high_a power_n for_o there_o be_v no_o power_n but_o of_o god_n be_v the_o lesson_n that_o s._n paul_n teach_v to_o the_o ancient_a roman_n where_o if_o it_o be_v demand_v 13._o whether_o that_o power_n also_o which_o persecute_v the_o servant_n of_o god_n impugn_v the_o faith_n and_o subvert_v religion_n be_v of_o god_n our_o countryman_n sedulius_n will_v teach_v we_o to_o answer_v with_o origen_n that_o even_o such_o a_o power_n as_o that_o be_v give_v of_o god_n for_o the_o revenge_n of_o the_o evil_a and_o the_o praise_n of_o the_o good_a although_o he_o be_v as_o wicked_a as_o either_o nero_n among_o the_o roman_n or_o herod_n among_o the_o jew_n the_o one_o whereof_o most_o cruel_o persecute_v the_o christian_n the_o other_o christ_n himself_o and_o yet_o when_o the_o one_o of_o they_o sway_v the_o sceptre_n s._n paul_n tell_v the_o christian_a roman_n that_o they_o 13.5_o must_v needs_o be_v subject_n not_o only_o for_o wrath_n but_o also_o for_o conscience_n sake_n and_o of_o the_o causeless_a fear_n of_o the_o other_o these_o verse_n of_o sedulius_n be_v solemn_o sing_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n even_o unto_o this_o day_n christi_fw-la herodes_n hostess_fw-la impie_fw-la christum_fw-la venire_fw-la quid_fw-la time_n non_fw-la abripit_fw-la mortalia_fw-la qui_fw-la regna_fw-la that_fw-mi coelestia_fw-la why_o wicked_a herod_n do_v thou_o fear_v and_o at_o christ_n come_v frown_n the_o mortal_a he_o take_v not_o away_o that_o give_v the_o heavenly_a crown_n a_o better_a paraphrase_n whereof_o you_o ca●not_v have_v than_o this_o which_o claudius_n have_v insert_v into_o his_o collection_n upon_o s._n matthew_n matth._n that_o king_n which_o be_v bear_v do_v not_o come_v to_o overcome_v king_n by_o fight_v but_o to_o subdue_v they_o after_o a_o wonderful_a manner_n by_o die_v neither_o be_v he_o bear_v to_o the_o end_n that_o he_o may_v succeed_v thou_o but_o that_o the_o world_n may_v faithful_o believe_v in_o he_o for_o he_o be_v come_v not_o that_o he_o may_v fight_v be_v alive_a but_o that_o he_o may_v triumph_v be_v slay_v nor_o that_o he_o may_v with_o gold_n get_v a_o army_n unto_o himself_o out_o of_o other_o nation_n but_o that_o he_o may_v shed_v his_o precious_a blood_n for_o the_o save_n of_o the_o nation_n vain_o do_v thou_o by_o envy_v fear_v he_o to_o be_v thy_o successor_n who_o by_o believe_v thou_o ought_v to_o seek_v as_o thy_o saviour_n because_o if_o thou_o do_v believe_v in_o he_o thou_o shall_v reign_v with_o he_o and_o as_o thou_o have_v receive_v a_o temporal_a kingdom_n from_o he_o thou_o shall_v also_o receive_v from_o he_o a_o everlasting_a for_o the_o kingdom_n of_o this_o child_n be_v not_o of_o this_o world_n but_o by_o he_o it_o be_v that_o man_n do_v reign_v in_o this_o world_n he_o be_v the_o wisdom_n of_o god_n which_o say_v in_o the_o proverbes_n by_o i_o king_n reign_v this_o child_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n this_o child_n be_v the_o power_n and_o wisdom_n of_o god_n if_o thou_o can_v think_v against_o the_o wisdom_n of_o god_n thou_o work_v thy_o own_o destruction_n and_o do_v not_o know_v it_o for_o thou_o by_o no_o mean_n shall_v have_v have_v thy_o kingdom_n unless_o thou_o have_v receive_v it_o from_o that_o child_n which_o now_o be_v bear_v as_o for_o the_o censure_n of_o the_o doctor_n of_o salamanca_n and_o vallodilid_n our_o nobility_n and_o gentry_n by_o the_o faithful_a service_n which_o at_o that_o time_n they_o perform_v unto_o the_o crown_n of_o england_n do_v make_v a_o real_a confutation_n of_o it_o of_o who_o fidelity_n in_o this_o kind_n i_o be_o so_o well_o persuade_v that_o i_o do_v assure_v myself_o that_o neither_o the_o name_n of_o franciscus_n zumel_n and_o alphonsus_n curiel_n how_o great_a schoolman_n soever_o